Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n church_n faith_n pope_n 3,103 5 6.3417 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10389 A revievv of the Councell of Trent VVherein are contained the severall nullities of it: with the many grievances and prejudices done by it to Christian kings and princes: as also to all catholique churches in the world; and more particularly to the Gallicane Church. First writ in French by a learned Roman-Catholique. Now translated into English by G.L.; Revision du Concile de Trente. English Ranchin, Guillaume, b. 1560.; Langbaine, Gerard, 1609-1658. 1638 (1638) STC 20667; ESTC S116164 572,475 418

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

author_n of_o this_o council_n be_v confirm_v and_o authorize_v by_o the_o council_n itself_o which_o tend_v whole_o to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o their_o authority_n and_o strengthen_v of_o their_o power_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o such_o reason_n as_o we_o shall_v urge_v take_v out_o of_o their_o own_o write_n the_o main_a vow_n whereunto_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o their_o institution_n be_v that_o of_o obedience_n hark_v what_o loiola_n their_o founder_n say_v of_o it_o in_o a_o letter_n of_o he_o which_o he_o write_v in_o italian_a to_o the_o father_n of_o portugal_n we_o easy_o endure_v to_o be_v outdo_v by_o all_o other_o order_n in_o fasting_n watch_n and_o other_o hardness_n which_o they_o use_v in_o a_o holy_a manner_n according_a to_o their_o institution_n but_o in_o purity_n and_o perfection_n of_o obedience_n i_o earnest_o desire_v that_o you_o will_v surpass_v all_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o true_a resignation_n of_o your_o own_o will_n and_o a_o denial_n of_o your_o own_o judgement_n now_o this_o vow_n look_v full_a upon_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o they_o commit_v themselves_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o be_v no_o more_o their_o own_o not_o to_o believe_v their_o own_o sense_n their_o judgement_n their_o understanding_n their_o prudence_n and_o counsel_n but_o to_o dispose_v of_o and_o submit_v themselves_o total_o to_o he_o to_o go_v come_v do_v say_v execute_v upon_o all_o and_o against_o all_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v they_o the_o form_n of_o their_o vow_n which_o i_o be_o about_o to_o insert_v shall_v serve_v for_o proof_n of_o my_o assertion_n 2_o as_o many_o as_o shall_v make_v profession_n in_o this_o society_n 1594._o let_v they_o not_o only_o know_v before_o they_o make_v it_o but_o remember_v as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v that_o all_o this_o society_n in_o general_a and_o more_o particular_o those_o that_o be_v profess_v in_o it_o serve_v god_n under_o a_o faithful_a obedience_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n pope_n paul_n the_o three_o and_o other_o pope_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n and_o although_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v know_v by_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o firm_o hold_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a people_n of_o christ_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o head_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o the_o great_a devotion_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o the_o great_a denial_n of_o our_o own_o will_n and_o the_o more_o certain_a direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o have_v judge_v that_o it_o will_v be_v very_o commodious_a that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o and_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v hereafter_o follow_v the_o same_o profession_n beside_o the_o common_a tie_n of_o the_o three_o ordinary_a vow_n be_v bind_v hereunto_o by_o a_o more_o special_a vow_n to_o wit_n that_o whatsoever_o the_o present_a pope_n and_o all_o other_o hereafter_o for_o the_o time_n be_v shall_v command_v for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n and_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o faith_n into_o what_o country_n soever_o they_o shall_v please_v to_o send_v we_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v their_o pleasure_n immediate_o without_o any_o tergiversation_n or_o excuse_n for_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o our_o power_n whether_o they_o be_v aminded_a to_o send_v we_o among_o the_o turk_n or_o other_o infidel_n whatsoever_o yea_o though_o it_o be_v even_o unto_o those_o that_o be_v call_v indian_n or_o among_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n whosoever_o they_o be_v or_o among_o christian_n now_o these_o mission_n and_o delegation_n must_v depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n alone_o and_o next_o to_o he_o upo●_n their_o general_n 334._o and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o ambition_n nor_o refusal_n may_v take_v place_n among_o we_o by_o occasion_n of_o these_o deputation_n and_o election_n of_o province_n let_v every_o one_o know_v that_o he_o need_v not_o trouble_n either_o himself_o or_o other_o about_o it_o nor_o take_v think_v for_o it_o jesuit_n inasmuch_o as_o all_o the_o ●are_n thereof_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o god_n and_o the_o p●pe_n as_o his_o vicar_n and_o to_o the_o general_n of_o the_o society_n 3_o be_v oblige_v unto_o the_o pope_n by_o such_o a_o vow_n as_o this_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v they_o and_o albeit_o their_o sense_n and_o reason_n shall_v dictate_v unto_o they_o that_o his_o command_n be_v injust_a they_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o but_o to_o refer_v themselves_o whole_o to_o he_o nay_o there_o be_v yet_o more_o that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o imagine_v that_o any_o error_n or_o impiety_n or_o injustice_n can_v come_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o all_o religion_n zeal_n devotion_n equity_n and_o truth_n behold_v their_o maxim_n 5._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o in_o precept_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v command_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o which_o consist_v in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o such_o as_o be_v of_o themselves_o good_a or_o bad_a item_n that_o it_o be_v probable_a and_o may_v be_v pious_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v a●_n pope_n yea_o and_o that_o as_o a_o particular_a person_n he_o can_v be_v a_o heretic_n by_o beleeve_a with_o obstinacy_n any_o error_n against_o the_o faith_n see_v yet_o a_o three_o 136._o if_o any_o man_n examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v different_a chance_v to_o contradict_v it_o let_v he_o be_v root_v out_o with_o fire_n and_o sword_n afterward_o they_o make_v a_o particular_a enquiry_n into_o the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o pope_n that_o ever_o live_v 335._o and_o maintain_v that_o not_o one_o among_o they_o ever_o err_v that_o they_o be_v all_o holy_a and_o honest_a man_n beside_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o article_n of_o their_o institution_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n bull_n and_o insert_v in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o acknowledge_v christum_fw-la velut_fw-la praesentem_fw-la christ_n as_o present_a not_o only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o of_o their_o general_n 4_o let_v any_o man_n of_o sound_a judgement_n judge_v now_o if_o they_o can_v deny_v it_o whether_o their_o soul_n be_v their_o own_o whether_o they_o can_v avoid_v the_o pope_n injunction_n and_o command_n or_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o they_o in_o any_o wise_a whether_o they_o can_v presume_v that_o he_o will_v cast_v they_o upon_o sin_n though_o the_o thing_n he_o command_v they_o be_v a_o crime_n or_o offence_n whence_o we_o must_v necessary_o conclude_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o honest_a &_o peaceable_a man_n such_o a_o one_o as_o clement_n the_o eight_o now_o reign_v to_o who_o france_n be_v so_o much_o oblige_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v they_o will_v be_v so_o too_o so_o it_o be_v see_v in_o effect_n that_o at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v some_o dove_n some_o maiden_n some_o sheep_n that_o they_o help_v to_o establish_v the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n that_o they_o peaceable_o converse_v with_o those_o who_o they_o account_v to_o be_v heretic_n t●at_o they_o admit_v their_o child_n into_o their_o college_n with_o protestation_n to_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o a_o boniface_n the_o eight_o a_o benedict_n the_o thirteen_o a_o julius_n the_o second_o a_o gregory_n the_o fourteen_o or_o a_o sixtus_n the_o five_o shall_v be_v alive_a again_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o france_n that_o have_v so_o many_o janissary_n or_o emissary_n upon_o her_o hand_n so_o many_o enemy_n within_o her_o bosom_n so_o many_o worm_n within_o her_o bowel_n which_o gnaw_v she_o within_o and_o tear_v in_o piece_n her_o noble_a member_n can_v the_o prince_n live_v secure_a if_o that_o say_n of_o a_o ancient_a be_v true_a that_o he_o which_o care_v not_o for_o his_o own_o life_n be_v the_o master_n of_o another_o man_n can_v he_o escape_v a_o dismal_a blow_n have_v in_o all_o part_n of_o his_o kingdom_n some_o person_n that_o upon_o the_o least_o whistle_n will_v run_v some_o to_o their_o knife_n some_o to_o their_o sword_n which_o will_v arm_v themselves_o with_o fraud_n and_o treachery_n and_o perfidiousness_n which_o will_v make_v underhand_a plot_n and_o project_n which_o will_v seduce_v his_o subject_n and_o draw_v they_o from_o his_o obedience_n will_v pronounce_v he_o a_o tyrant_n a_o heretic_n a_o schismatique_a how_o good_a how_o religious_a how_o catholic_a soever_o he_o be_v let_v not_o my_o word_n be_v credit_v but_o the_o example_n which_o have_v be_v see_v of_o it_o let_v a_o man_n fancy_n to_o himself_o france_n all_o cover_v with_o blood_n and_o fire_n and_o flame_n
by_o thy_o own_o sentence_n in_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o write_v curse_a be_v he_o that_o do_v not_o keep_v the_o apostolical_a commandment_n which_o it_o be_v well_o know_v thou_o both_o heretofore_o many_o way_n have_v and_o at_o this_o present_n do_v violate_v trample_v under_o foot_n both_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n at_o once_o make_v they_o of_o no_o effect_n nor_o use_v in_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o can_v never_o tread_v near_o the_o footstep_n of_o thy_o predecessor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o therefore_o have_v experience_n of_o thy_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n observe_v withal_o thy_o indignation_n and_o high_a swell_a ambition_n and_o we_o do_v not_o yield_v a_o inch_n to_o thou_o nor_o to_o thy_o pride_n whereby_o thou_o hastene_v to_o bring_v we_o under_o hatch_n prosecute_a herein_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o enemy_n but_o thy_o favourite_n nay_o thou_o shall_v know_v we_o be_v none_o of_o thy_o clerk_n as_o thou_o do_v boast_v and_o brag_v but_o that_o thou_o shall_v acknowledge_v we_o for_o thy_o brethren_n and_o fellow-bishop_n if_o thy_o arrogancy_n will_v permit_v thou_o so_o to_o do_v 14_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n enough_o of_o themselves_o to_o compass_v their_o end_n to_o tame_a prince_n to_o trouble_v and_o enthrall_v christendom_n or_o haply_o when_o they_o will_v set_v a_o fair_a gloss_n of_o justice_n upon_o their_o action_n and_o cut_v off_o all_o mean_n of_o gainsay_v than_o they_o relieve_v themselves_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o council_n or_o other_o call_v together_o by_o their_o cunning_n and_o pack_v up_o according_a to_o their_o humour_n whereunto_o all_o man_n in_o honour_n and_o reverence_n to_o the_o church_n ready_o submit_v themselves_o as_o unto_o some_o divine_a oracle_n counce●l_n till_o at_o last_o they_o begin_v to_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n and_o perceive_v plain_o that_o those_o assembly_n under_o colour_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n serve_v but_o for_o instrument_n to_o the_o pope_n humour_n to_o wreak_v their_o humane_a malice_n stick_v close_o unto_o their_o tyranny●_n and_o give_v authority_n to_o their_o injust_a usurpation_n this_o be_v it_o which_o oft_o time_n give_v occasion_n to_o reject_v those_o counsel_n as_o spurious_a and_o adulterate_a as_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n yet_o always_o conserve_n a_o due_a reverence_n to_o those_o true_a holy_a lawful_a and_o ecumenical_a assembly_n assemble_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereof_o we_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o instance_n or_o two_o 15_o gregory_n the_o seven_o excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o famous_a council_n hold_v at_o rome_n 118._o in_o the_o year_n 1074._o the_o pope_n say_v the_o german_a chronicle_n call_v a_o famous_a synod_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n at_o rome_n in_o which_o council_n divers_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o christian_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n be_v enact_v and_o ordain_v there_o also_o be_v henry_n afterward_o excommunicate_v as_o a_o enemy_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n platina_n have_v set_v down_o the_o form_n of_o that_o excommunication_n 2._o a_o english_a monk_n do_v ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o council_n of_o clerimont_n but_o he_o do_v but_o equivocate_a in_o that_o unless_o he_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v repeat_v there_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n do_v set_v so_o light_a by_o it_o that_o the_o next_o year_n after_o be_v synodical_o assemble_v at_o brixin_n in_o austria_n they_o depose_v pope_n gregory_n and_o choose_v gerbert_n archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n in_o his_o stead_n call_v he_o clement_n 120_o henry_n desire_v to_o secure_v the_o fluctuate_a and_o trouble_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o chronicle_n call_v a_o council_n at_o brixin_n a_o city_n in_o austria_n where_o he_o assemble_v all_o the_o bishop_n and_o abbat_n which_o be_v of_o his_o opinion_n against_o pope_n gregory_n in_o which_o counceil_n they_o by_o their_o decree_n depose_v pope_n gregory_n in_o his_o absence_n from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o a_o perturber_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o wild_a head_a monk_n for_o he_o be_v a_o monk_n before_o he_o be_v pope_n and_o choose_v in_o his_o place_n gerbert_n archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n afterward_o he_o set_v down_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o decree_n platina_n though_o a_o officer_n of_o the_o pope_n affirm_v as_o much_o 7._o then_o say_v he_o henry_n be_v rather_o incense_v than_o admonish_v by_o these_o censure_n have_v assemble_v a_o company_n of_o bishop_n ill_o affect_v like_o himself_o he_o create_v gerbert_n late_a archbishop_n o●_n ravenna_n pope_n and_o call_v he_o clement_n the_o council_n of_o clerimont_n hold_v under_o vrban_n the_o second_o and_o where_o he_o be_v personal_o present_a in_o the_o year_n 1094._o or_o as_o other_o be_v of_o opinion_n 95._o make_v the_o like_a attempt_n to_o excommunicate_a king_n philip_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o marriage_n and_o again_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o poitiers_n not_o long_o after_o by_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o this_o council_n say_v matthew_n paris_n 212._o speak_v of_o that_o of_o clerimont_n pope_n urban_n excommunicate_v philip_n king_n of_o france_n and_o another_o english_a author_n in_o this_o council_n the_o pope_n excommunicate_v king_n philip_n of_o france_n and_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v call_v he_o their_o king_n or_o their_o lord_n and_o which_o shall_v obey_v he_o or_o speak_v unto_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n ivo_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n speak_v of_o they_o both_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o accusation_n king_n philip_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n urban_n at_o the_o council_n of_o clerimont_n and_o have_v resume_v the_o same_o wife_n after_o he_o be_v divorce_v from_o she_o he_o be_v afterward_o excommunicate_v at_o the_o council_n of_o poitiers_n by_o the_o two_o cardinal_n john_n and_o bennet_n notwithstanding_o which_o excommunication_n he_o be_v crown_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o tours_n in_o a_o full_a assembly_n of_o other_o bishop_n know_v you_o therefore_o say_v the_o same_o bishop_n of_o chartres_n in_o a_o letter_n of_o he_o to_o pope_n vrban_n 68_o who_o partisan_n he_o be_v that_o contrary_a to_o the_o prohibition_n of_o your_o legate_n the_o archbishop_n of_o tours_n have_v set_v crown_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o king_n he_o speak_v afterward_o of_o the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n make_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o those_o who_o be_v assemble_v with_o the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o in_o another_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o one_o of_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n paschal_n the_o second_o 134._o certain_a bishop_n say_v he_o of_o the_o province_n of_o belgia_n crown_v the_o king_n upon_o whitsunday_n contrary_a to_o the_o edict_n of_o pope_n vrban_n of_o happy_a memory_n in_o another_o epistle_n former_o write_v to_o the_o same_o vrban_n he_o give_v he_o to_o wit_n how_o philip_n have_v send_v ambassador_n unto_o he_o with_o prayer_n in_o one_o hand_n council_n and_o threat_n in_o the_o other_o such_o as_o these_o that_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n will_v relinquish_v their_o obedienec_fw-la to_o he_o unless_o he_o do_v restore_v the_o king_n unto_o his_o crown_n and_o absolve_v he_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n pa●●m_fw-la and_o afterward_o he_o advertise_v he_o how_o the_o arch-bishop_n of_o rheims_n sans_o and_o tours_n have_v by_o injunction_n from_o the_o king_n appoint_v their_o suffragan_a bishop_n to_o meet_v at_o troy_n the_o first_o sunday_n after_o all-saint_n day_n after_o he_o shall_v have_v return_v his_o answer_n whence_o we_o collect_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o king_n nor_o to_o obey_v he_o and_o communicate_v with_o he_o notwithstanding_o the_o prohibition_n from_o the_o council_n of_o clerimont_n next_o that_o they_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o put_v in_o execution_n those_o threat_n which_o the_o ambassador_n go_v to_o make_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o case_n he_o do_v not_o condescend_v unto_o the_o king_n pleasure_n and_o yet_o that_o be_v as_o renown_v a_o council_n as_o this_o of_o trent_n if_o not_o more_o where_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v present_a in_o person_n where_o that_o great_a croisada_n for_o the_o holy_a land_n be_v conclude_v upon_o 1095._o and_o one_o of_o our_o historian_n speak_v of_o it_o call_v it_o in_o terminis_fw-la the_o great_a council_n in_o the_o year_n 1215_o innocent_n the_o three_o in_o a_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o rome_n do_v excommunicate_a lewes_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o philip_n augustus_n king_n of_o france_n with_o all_o his_o adherent_n the_o same_o year_n say_v a_o english_a monk_n upon_o s._n martin_n day_n 1215._o be_v there_o a_o general_a
who_o have_v say_v to_o a_o king_n apostate_n and_o make_v a_o hypocrite_n to_o reign_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n teach_v the_o people_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o obedience_n to_o bad_a king_n no_o allegiance_n though_o they_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n to_o perform_v it_o that_o those_o who_o take_v part_n against_o their_o king_n can_v be_v call_v perjure_a but_o rather_o he_o that_o will_v obey_v the_o king_n must_v be_v account_v excommunicate_a but_o he_o that_o will_v be_v against_o he_o absolve_v from_o injustice_n and_o perjury_n 28_o he_o that_o write_v the_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecelesiae_fw-la observanda_fw-la in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o same_o henry_n the_o 4_o which_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v venericus_n vercellensis_n 33._o refute_v the_o motive_n and_o reason_n of_o gregory_n the_o 7_o sai_z as_o for_o that_o which_o he_o add_v it_o seem_v wondrous_a strange_a that_o any_o religious_a bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v undertake_v to_o absove_v any_o man_n from_o his_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n not_o long_o after_o he_o add_v see_v how_o the_o catholic_a church_n defend_v every_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o reprovable_a and_o therefore_o she_o defend_v both_o zachary_n and_o stephen_n pope_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o piety_n none_o of_o which_o as_o we_o very_o well_o know_v absolve_v the_o french_a from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o they_o have_v swear_v to_o their_o king_n as_o pope_n hildebrand_n give_v out_o in_o writing_n that_o so_o by_o this_o precedent_n he_o may_v cozen_v the_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n as_o if_o he_o can_v absolve_v they_o from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o they_o have_v swear_v unto_o their_o king_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n intend_v by_o that_o mean_n to_o depose_v he_o and_o strip_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v divers_a time_n attempt_v within_o these_o fourteen_o year_n last_o pass_v and_o above_o do_v never_o yet_o take_v effect_n for_o all_o that_o 29_o afterward_o he_o relate_v the_o story_n of_o pippin_n coronation_n and_o there_o conclude_v mark_v now_o the_o order_n how_o thing_n be_v carry_v and_o observe_v if_o any_o of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n ever_o depose_v the_o king_n of_o france_n out_o of_o his_o realm_n as_o pope_n hildebrand_n write_v and_o absolve_v the_o french_a from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o they_o have_v take_v unto_o he_o which_o oath_n as_o have_v be_v former_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n no_o man_n can_v dissolve_v without_o make_v the_o party_n absolve_v a_o liar_n allegiance_n and_o perjure_a and_o damn_v of_o the_o sin-absolver_n 134._o 30_o the_o clergy_n of_o liege_n in_o their_o apology_n against_o pope_n paschal_n the_o second_o speak_v of_o the_o absolution_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o he_o have_v grant_v against_o the_o same_o henry_n the_o 4_o who_o can_v just_o blame_v a_o bishop_n for_o favour_v his_o lord_n party_n to_o who_o he_o owe_v allegiance_n and_o have_v promise_v it_o by_o oath_n no_o man_n doubt_n but_o perjury_n be_v a_o grievous_a offence_n god_n only_o swear_v and_o repent_v not_o because_o wisdom_n keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n oath_n but_o for_o we_o who_o often_o repent_v that_o we_o have_v swear_v we_o be_v forbid_v to_o swear_v if_o man_n swear_v god_n enjoin_v he_o to_o perform_v his_o oath_n unto_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o those_o that_o rend_v the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n by_o a_o new_a schism_n and_o with_o their_o upstart_a tradition_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o promise_v to_o absolve_v from_o all_o sin_n such_o as_o incur_v the_o crime_n of_o perjury_n towards_o their_o king_n never_a regard_v what_o god_n say_v to_o zedekias_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o ezekiel_n who_o have_v commit_v perjury_n against_o his_o king_n nebuchadonosor_n he_o that_o have_v break_v the_o covenant_n shall_v he_o escape_v which_o st._n jerom_n expound_v thus_o hence_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v touch_n even_o with_o our_o enemy_n and_o not_o consider_v to_o who_o but_o by_o who_o we_o have_v swear_v pap._n 31_o gregory_n of_o heymburg_n in_o a_o tract_n of_o he_o with_o what_o conscience_n say_v he_o dare_v any_o priest_n even_o the_o pope_n himself_o undertake_v to_o absolve_v the_o liege_n subject_n of_o the_o empire_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v bind_v every_o one_o especial_o so_o long_o as_o the_o piety_n of_o faith_n be_v preserve_v entire_a and_o if_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v by_o his_o oligarchicall_a law_n yet_o he_o can_v so_o by_o the_o divine_a law_n without_o imputation_n of_o error_n 5._o 32_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o empire_n speak_v of_o gregory_n the_o 13_o who_o make_v all_o apulia_n italy_n and_o spain_n revolt_v from_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o make_v they_o deny_v to_o pay_v he_o tribute_n and_o subsidy_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o controversy_n about_o image_n which_o be_v then_o betwixt_o they_o say_v thus_o for_o this_o reason_n the_o say_a gregory_n undertake_v to_o excommunicate_v the_o say_a leo_n and_o persuade_v all_o apulia_n italy_n and_o spain_n to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v put_v it_o in_o execution_n howbeit_o without_o any_o great_a right_n he_o also_o in_o solemn_a manner_n forbid_v he_o to_o receive_v any_o subsidy_n by_o what_o authority_n i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o wot_v well_o by_o what_o temerity_n 33_o divers_a doctor_n and_o learned_a man_n both_o in_o divinity_n and_o in_o either_o law_n have_v in_o their_o write_n in_o sundry_a age_n oppose_v this_o usurpation_n of_o rome_n and_o prove_v by_o sound_a reason_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a sword_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o prince_n and_o other_o magistrate_n that_o he_o have_v no_o secular_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n nor_o over_o their_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n which_o depend_v upon_o god_n not_o upon_o he_o that_o consequent_o he_o can_v take_v they_o from_o they_o to_o bestow_v they_o upon_o another_o nor_o absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n these_o witness_n have_v withstand_v the_o pope_n as_o stout_o by_o their_o pen_n at_o king_n and_o emperor_n by_o their_o sword_n yea_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o their_o armour_n have_v be_v but_o very_o weak_a if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v temper_v in_o these_o write_n as_o some_o historian_n do_v assure_v we_o and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n many_o time_n have_v dart_v out_o their_o thunderbolt_n against_o they_o and_o their_o work_n which_o our_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v use_v to_o do_v and_o which_o our_o pope_n do_v put_v in_o execution_n daily_o according_a to_o the_o commission_n grant_v they_o by_o i●_n stuff_v their_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la with_o their_o name_n i_o shall_v be_v troublesome_a if_o i_o shall_v here_o quote_v their_o authority_n and_o much_o more_o if_o i_o shall_v set_v down_o their_o reason_n parallele_v i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o cite_v some_o few_o in_o the_o 4._o margin_n beside_o those_o who_o i_o have_v already_o allege_v to_o who_o any_o man_n may_v have_v recourse_n chap._n xiii_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o that_o go_v before_o 1_o now_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o treatise_n we_o will_v here_o set_v down_o the_o antithesis_fw-la of_o gregory_n haymburg_n finem_fw-la which_o suit_v very_o well_o with_o the_o former_a discourse_n 1_o christ_n reject_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n his_o vicar_n canvase_v for_o it_o 2_o christ_n refuse_v a_o kingdom_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v he_o his_o vicar_n will_v needs_o have_v one_o which_o be_v deny_v he_o 3_o christ_n refuse_v to_o be_v make_v a_o secular_a judge_n his_o vicar_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o judge_v the_o emperor_n 4_o christ_n submit_v himself_o to_o the_o emperor_n deputy_n his_o vicar_n prefer_v himself_o before_o the_o emperor_n himself_o yea_o before_o all_o the_o world_n 5_o christ_n reprove_v those_o who_o desire_v primacy_n his_o vicar_n wrangle_v for_o it_o against_o all_o the_o church_n 6_o christ_n upon_o palmesunday_n be_v mount_v upon_o a_o ass_n his_o vicar_n be_v not_o content_a with_o a_o stately_a cavalierie_a unless_o the_o emperor_n hold_v his_o right_a stirrup_n 7_o christ_n unite_v the_o disagree_a jew_n and_o all_o other_o nation_n in_o one_o ecclesiastical_a kingdom_n his_o vicar_n have_v oftentimes_o raise_v sedition_n among_o the_o german_n when_o they_o be_v at_o unity_n 8_o christ_n though_o innocent_a endure_v injury_n patient_o his_o vicar_n though_o nocent_a cease_v not_o to_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o
that_o whatsoever_o they_o can_v urge_v concern_v this_o point_n have_v be_v heretofore_o urge_v to_o our_o precedent_a king_n but_o in_o vain_a and_o with_o no_o effect_n for_o they_o will_v never_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o publication_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o dangerous_a both_o to_o the_o church_n and_o state_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o instance_n which_o have_v be_v make_v unto_o the_o late_a king_n for_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o 1_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v no_o soon_o finish_v but_o charle●●_n the_o nine_o be_v move_v by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o of_o the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o piedmont_n to_o keep_v and_o cause_n to_o be_v keep_v within_o his_o dominion_n the_o canon_n and_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n mark_v the_o very_a article_n of_o their_o ambassage_n 1563._o the_o first_o point_n be_v that_o they_o have_v solicit_v the_o king_n to_o observe_v and_o cause_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o his_o kingdom_n country_n place_n and_o signiory_n within_o his_o dominion_n the_o article_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n late_o hold_v at_o trent_n which_o they_o have_v bring_v with_o they_o and_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v be_v read_v unto_o he_o and_o a_o oath_n administer_v before_o the_o delegate_n of_o the_o say_a council_n the_o king_n be_v appoint_v to_o appear_v at_o nants_n in_o lorraine_n upon_o our_o lady_n day_n in_o march_n where_o the_o say_v grande_n will_v likewise_o appear_v they_o and_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n where_o they_o determine_v to_o make_v a_o universal_a law_n like_a to_o that_o which_o be_v be_v enact_v and_o agree_v upon_o at_o the_o say_v holy_a council_n for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n and_o uncouth_a doctrine_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v repugnant_a to_o the_o holy_a council_n aforesaid_a 2_o they_o make_v also_o some_o other_o request_n unto_o he_o as_o that_o he_o will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o alienation_n of_o the_o temporal_a good_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o will_v cause_v the_o ringleader_n of_o the_o seditious_a and_o schismatical_a person_n in_o his_o dominion_n to_o be_v punish_v that_o he_o will_v revoke_v the_o pardon_n and_o absolution_n grant_v by_o his_o proclamation_n especial_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o as_o be_v guilty_a of_o treason_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o sword_n of_o justice_n for_o the_o punish_n of_o the_o murder_n commit_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o guise_n to_o all_o which_o demand_v he_o make_v answer_v by_o write_v in_o this_o sort_n i_o thank_v your_o master_n majesty_n for_o the_o good_a and_o commendable_a advice_n they_o give_v i_o and_o you_o also_o for_o the_o pain_n which_o it_o have_v please_v you_o to_o take_v in_o that_o behalf_n give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o my_o very_a purpose_n be_v to_o live_v and_o cause_v my_o people_n to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o laudable_a custom_n keep_v and_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o peace_n which_o i_o make_v hereupon_o be_v to_o clear_v my_o kingdom_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o for_o the_o present_a my_o desire_n be_v that_o justice_n be_v observe_v in_o all_o place_n of_o my_o dominion_n but_o i_o entreat_v they_o to_o hold_v i_o excuse_v for_o a_o reason_n which_o i_o shall_v send_v unto_o they_o in_o writing_n and_o because_o i_o will_v have_v the_o advice_n of_o the_o prince_n lord_n and_o person_n of_o note_n of_o my_o counsel_n which_o i_o will_v call_v within_o these_o few_o day_n for_o that_o purpose_n 3_o it_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o counsel_n not_o to_o hearken_v to_o these_o persuasion_n and_o impression_n and_o that_o not_o only_o now_o but_o afterward_o also_o in_o the_o year_n 1572_o when_o cardinal_n alexandrino_n the_o pope_n nephew_n come_v forth_o of_o spain_n into_o france_n with_o commission_n to_o reinforce_v this_o instance_n and_o yet_o this_o king_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o oblige_v herein_o than_o his_o successor_n consider_v how_o he_o have_v bestir_v himself_o for_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n ever_o since_o his_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o how_o he_o have_v send_v his_o ambassador_n and_o orator_n to_o it_o and_o have_v cause_v the_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o go_v thither_o as_o appear_v both_o by_o his_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o council_n and_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o his_o orator_n more_o particular_o by_o that_o of_o the_o lord_n of_o pibrac_n it_o as_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o refusal_n we_o shall_v speak_v of_o they_o anon_o 4_o king_n henry_n the_o three_o be_v entreat_v and_o urge_v in_o this_o point_n several_a time_n not_o only_o by_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o by_o the_o clergy_n of_o his_o kingdom_n who_o never_o cease_v hammer_v of_o this_o iron_n yet_o can_v they_o not_o work_v it_o to_o their_o like_n mounseur_fw-fr arnalt_n of_o pontac_n bishop_n of_o bazas_n do_v testify_v as_o much_o in_o a_o oration_n of_o he_o deliver_v the_o three_o of_o july_n 1579_o this_o thing_n say_v he_o speak_v to_o the_o king_n about_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o council_n for_o which_o the_o clergy_n have_v many_o time_n heretofore_o petition_v you_o and_o namely_o in_o the_o last_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o state_n hold_v at_o blois_n he_o mean_v especial_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 1576._o where_fw-mi mounseur_fw-fr peter_n espinac_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n in_o a_o oration_n make_v by_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a of_o france_n speak_v thus_o unto_o the_o king_n they_o most_o humble_o desire_v you_o that_o according_a to_o their_o more_o particular_a request_n exhibit_v in_o their_o remonstrances●_n you_o will_v authorise_v and_o cause_n to_o be_v publish_v the_o holy_a and_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n which_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n have_v diligent_o seek_v out_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o restore_v the_o church_n to_o her_o primitive_a splendour_n wherein_o sir_n they_o hope_v and_o expect_v from_o you_o as_o a_o most_o christian_n ●_z and_o most_o affectionate_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o assistance_n of_o your_o authority_n to_o put_v this_o reformation_n in_o execution_n and_o here_o it_o be_v worth_a observe_n that_o diverse_a ecclesiasticke_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o publication_n and_o observance_n of_o the_o say_a council_n may_v be_v require_v 1577._o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n with_o exemption_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o they_o enjoy_v at_o that_o present_a and_o of_o such_o privilege_n and_o dispensation_n as_o they_o have_v already_o obtain_v and_o not_o otherwise_o whereupon_o a_o protestation_n be_v draw_v the_o 23._o of_o december_n in_o the_o same_o year_n and_o afterward_o print_v 1594._o the_o 26._o of_o that_o month_n certain_a delegate_n of_o the_o church_n appear_v in_o the_o council_n and_o exhort_v the_o three_o estate_n to_o tolerate_v but_o one_o religion_n viz._n the_o catholic_a roman_a and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o to_o take_v a_o view_n of_o those_o article_n which_o be_v general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o estate_n to_o have_v they_o collect_v into_o one_o scroll_n and_o authorize_v by_o the_o king_n to_o make_v they_o more_o authentic_a yet_o for_o all_o this_o nothing_o be_v do_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o report_n afterward_o set_v forth_o in_o print_n 5_o the_o same_o request_n be_v again_o repeat_v by_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n assemble_v at_o melun_n in_o july_n 1579._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o speech_n make_v before_o the_o king_n by_o the_o prenamed_a lord_n bishop_n of_o bazas_n out_o of_o which_o we_o have_v extract_v these_o word_n the_o clergy_n humble_o entreat_v your_o majesty_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o by_o your_o authority_n to_o reduce_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o reform_v themselves_o in_o good_a earnest_n among_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o reformation_n and_o discipline_n they_o have_v pitch_v upon_o those_o which_o be_v dictate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o write_v to_o the_o holy_a general_a council_n of_o trent_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v find_v any_o more_o austere_a and_o rigorous_a nor_o more_o proper_a for_o the_o present_a malady_n and_o indisposition_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n ecclesiastic_a but_o chief_o because_o they_o be_v tie_v and_o bind_v to_o all_o law_n so_o make_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o pain_n of_o be_v repute_v schismatical_a against_o the_o catholic_n apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o
of_o incur_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o present_o after_o he_o add_v wherefore_o the_o clergy_n do_v most_o humble_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o ordain_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n may_v be_v general_o publish_v throughout_o your_o dominion_n to_o be_v inviolable_o observe_v by_o they_o 6_o nicolas_n angelier_n bishop_n of_o saint_n brien_n make_v the_o like_a instance_n to_o the_o same_o king_n october_n the_o three_o 1579_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o clergy_n assemble_v at_o melun_n we_o have_v say_v he_o earnest_o desire_v and_o do_v now_o desire_v more_o earnesty_n and_o will_v desire_v as_o long_o as_o we_o breath_n of_o god_n and_o you_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n may_v be_v publish_v it_o and_o the_o election_n restore_v to_o church_n and_o monastery_n which_o publication_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o desire_v by_o we_o that_o we_o may_v thereby_o raise_v up_o you_o and_o other_o catholic_n prince_n in_o arm_n to_o spoil_v and_o butcher_v such_o as_o have_v straggle_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o we_o desire_v not_o to_o reclaim_v and_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n by_o force_n but_o by_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o the_o example_n of_o a_o good_a life_n for_o he_o we_o know_v come_v not_o into_o the_o world_n to_o destroy_v but_o to_o save_v the_o soul_n of_o all_o man_n for_o who_o he_o shed_v his_o precious_a blood_n and_o if_o need_v so_o require_v we_o will_v not_o stick_v in_o imitation_n of_o he_o to_o lay_v down_o our_o life_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o poor_a misuse_v soul_n but_o we_o desire_v that_o council_n may_v be_v publish_v for_o the_o establishment_n and_o maintain_v of_o a_o true_a sound_n entire_a and_o settle_a discipline_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o behooveful_a for_o the_o church_n 7_o july_n the_o seventeen_o 1582_o renald_n of_o beaune_z lord_n archbishop_n of_o bourges_n and_o primate_n of_o aquitane_n delegat_v for_o the_o clergy_n in_o this_o case_n speak_v at_o fountainbleau_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o whole_a church_n christian_n and_o catholic_n assist_v by_o the_o legate_n and_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o this_o your_o kingdom_n and_o of_o all_o other_o christian_a king_n prince_n and_o potentate_n do_v call_v assemble_v and_o celebrate_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n where_o many_o good_a and_o wholesome_a constitution_n useful_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v ordain_v to_o which_o council_n all_o the_o legate_n and_o ambassador_n do_v solemn_o swear_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o master_n to_o observe_v and_o keep_v and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v inviolable_o keep_v by_o all_o their_o subject_n yea_o even_o the_o ambassador_n of_o this_o your_o kingdom_n solemn_o take_v that_o oath_n now_o it_o be_v receive_v keep_v and_o observe_v by_o all_o christian_n catholic_n king_n and_o potentate_n this_o kingdom_n only_o except_v which_o have_v hithertoward_n defer_v the_o publication_n and_o receive_n of_o it_o to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o french_a nation_n and_o of_o the_o title_n of_o most_o christian_n wherewith_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o predecessor_n have_v be_v honour_v so_o that_o under_o colour_n of_o some_o article_n touch_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n which_o may_v be_v mild_o allay_v by_o the_o permission_n of_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n under_o scugge_n i_o say_v of_o this_o the_o stain_n and_o reproach_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n rest_v upon_o your_o kingdom_n among_o other_o country_n which_o signify_v no_o less_o in_o greek_a than_o division_n and_o disunion_n a_o mark_n and_o sign_n quite_o contrary_a to_o christianity_n and_o which_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o predecessor_n have_v ever_o abhor_v and_o eschew_v and_o when_o some_o difficulty_n be_v find_v about_o the_o receive_n of_o some_o other_o counsel_n as_o that_o of_o basil_n and_o other_o all_o be_v carry_v so_o grave_o and_o wise_o that_o both_o the_o honour_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o the_o right_n of_o your_o crown_n and_o dignity_n be_v maintain_v and_o preserve_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o clergy_n do_v now_o again_o most_o humble_o desire_v your_o majesty_n that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o hearken_v to_o this_o publication_n and_o remove_v all_o rub_n which_o be_v lay_v before_o you_o concern_v it_o that_o you_o will_v with_o a_o honest_a and_o pious_a resolution_n make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o union_n of_o his_o church_n 8_o there_o be_v a_o nuncio_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o arrive_v in_o france_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1583_o who_o prosecute_v this_o matter_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o earnestness_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o can_v not_o move_v henry_n the_o three_o one_o jot_n who_o like_o a_o great_a statesman_n as_o he_o be_v perceive_v better_a than_o any_o other_o what_o prejudice_n that_o council_n may_v be_v unto_o he_o 4._o his_o majesty_n that_o now_o reign_v be_v startle_v at_o that_o instance_n and_o afraid_a lest_o that_o importunity_n shall_v extort_v from_o he_o somewhat_o prejudicial_a to_o france_n whereupon_o he_o write_v to_o the_o late_a king_n concern_v it_o who_o make_v he_o this_o answer_n 1583._o 9_o brother_n those_o that_o tell_v you_o that_o i_o will_v cause_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v publish_v be_v not_o well_o inform_v of_o my_o intention_n for_o i_o never_o so_o much_o as_o think_v it_o nay_o i_o know_v well_o how_o such_o publication_n will_v be_v prejudicall_a to_o my_o affair_n and_o i_o be_o not_o a_o little_a jealous_a of_o the_o preservaton_n of_o my_o authority_n 3_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o also_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o my_o edict_n of_o peace_n but_o it_o be_v only_o propose_v unto_o i_o to_o cull_v out_o some_o certain_a article_n about_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n for_o the_o reform_n of_o such_o abuse_n as_o reign_v in_o that_o state_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o edify_n of_o my_o subject_n and_o withal_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n a_o thing_n which_o never_o touch_v upon_o those_o rule_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o my_o edict_n for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o my_o kingdom_n which_o i_o will_v have_v inviolable_o keep_v on_o both_o side_n 10_o november_n the_o nineteen_o 1585._o the_o same_o bishop_n of_o saint_n brien_n deliver_v another_o oration_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o say_a clergy_n and_o be_v their_o deputy_n whereby_o after_o he_o have_v commend_v the_o late_a king_n for_o his_o edict_n of_o reunion_n and_o exhort_v he_o to_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o and_o the_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastic_n he_o addes●_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n sir_n why_o we_o so_o earnest_o desire_v the_o publication_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n and_o above_o other_o myself_o have_v a_o more_o special_a command_n s●_n to_o do_v for_o that_o council_n have_v not_o only_a cleered●_n resolve_v and_o determine_v those_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n which_o be_v controvert_v by_o heretic_n to_o the_o end_n that_o people_n may_v not_o waver_v and_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n raise_v by_o the_o malice_n and_o cunning_n of_o man_n to_o circumvent_v and_o entice_v they_o into_o error_n but_o also_o it_o have_v most_o wise_o counsel_v and_o ordain_v every_o thing_n which_o may_v seem_v necessary_a for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v the_o exigency_n of_o these_o time_n 11_o there_o be_v also_o another_o assault_n make_v upon_o he_o o●tober_n the_o fourteen_o 1585._o by_o the_o lord_n bishop_n and_o earl_n of_o noyon_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o clergy_n assemble_v in_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n german_n near_a paris_n which_o be_v more_o press_v than_o the_o former_a we_o present_v unto_o you_o say_v he_o to_o the_o king_n a_o book_n which_o be_v find_v at_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o church_n treasure_n write_v by_o the_o prudent_a and_o grave_a advice_n of_o the_o many_o learned_a and_o famous_a man_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o travel_n pain_n and_o diligence_n have_v renew_v the_o ancient_a ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v most_o proper_a for_o our_o malady_n and_o for_o those_o vice_n which_o at_o this_o present_a be_v most_o predominant_a in_o the_o state_n and_o withal_o have_v provide_v for_o those_o which_o be_v of_o no_o great_a stand_v among_o we_o have_v not_o any_o particular_a remedy_n assign_v they_o the_o royal_a priest_n have_v put_v
they_o into_o our_o hand_n that_o we_o may_v present_v they_o to_o you_o first_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ●_n who_o have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o this_o church_n have_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n provide_v a_o remedy_n for_o she_o who_o direct_v the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n next_o unto_o he_o and_o under_o he_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o chief_a ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v authorize_v and_o confirm_v it_o and_o exhort_v all_o prince_n and_o republic_n to_o receive_v and_o observe_v it_o and_o with_o he_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o the_o gallicane_n only_o but_o the_o catholic_n do_v summon_v entreat_v and_o pray_v you_o to_o receive_v it_o that_o bless_a council_n carry_v with_o it_o to_o he_o that_o will_v due_o read_v and_o consider_v it_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o author_n in_o the_o face_n of_o it_o and_o he_o that_o will_v judge_v of_o it_o without_o passion_n and_o prejudice_n will_v say_v it_o be_v rather_o the_o work_n of_o god_n than_o man_n no_o good_a christian_n can_v or_o ought_v ever_o to_o make_v any_o question_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v preside_v in_o that_o goodly_a company_n which_o be_v in_o that_o manner_n lawful_o assemble_v at_o trent_n with_o the_o intervening_a authority_n and_o command_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_a prince_n who_o send_v their_o ambassador_n thither_o who_o stay_v there_o till_o the_o very_a upshot_n without_o the_o least_o dissent_v from_o the_o canon_n and_o decree_n there_o publish_v there_o be_v such_o a_o number_n of_o archbishop_n bishop_n abbat_n and_o learned_a man_n from_o all_o part_n yea_o not_o a_o few_o prelate_n of_o your_o own_o kingdom_n send_v thither_o by_o th●_n late_a king_n your_o brother_n who_o have_v deliver_v consult_v and_o speak_v their_o opinion_n free_o do_v consent_n and_o agree_v to_o what_o be_v there_o determine_v and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bold_a to_o tell_v you_o that_o we_o bring_v unto_o you_o 3._o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o we_o humble_o entreat_v you_o to_o receive_v with_o as_o much_o earnestness_n as_o we_o can_v possible_o 12_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v if_o there_o be_v some_o particular_n in_o that_o council_n which_o some_o body_n either_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o particular_a interest_n and_o commodity_n or_o because_o their_o body_n and_o humour_n be_v not_o sufficient_o prepare_v and_o dispose_v for_o the_o take_n of_o such_o strong_a physic_n do_v complain_v of_o and_o make_v some_o dorre_v about_o they_o there_o be_v a_o good_a remedy_n for_o that_o and_o we_o dare_v undertake_v and_o promise_v that_o recourse_n be_v have_v to_o his_o holiness_n and_o he_o require_v thereunto_o he_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o provide_v for_o it_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o chapiters_n and_o exempt_v corporation_n have_v by_o our_o mean_n and_o we_o with_o they_o already_o prefer_v a_o petition_n that_o their_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n may_v be_v preserve_v entire_a unto_o they_o and_o that_o this_o publication_n may_v in_o no_o sort_n prejudice_v they_o expect_v herein_o a_o new_a decree_n from_o his_o holiness_n after_o he_o shall_v be_v sufficient_o instruct_v by_o those_o remonstrance_n which_o may_v be_v make_v unto_o he_o concern_v this_o point_n as_o also_o we_o mean_v not_o by_o this_o publication_n to_o prejudice_v the_o immunity_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n which_o we_o persuade_v and_o assure_v ourselves_o his_o holiness_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v thereunto_o entreat_v will_v be_v content_a to_o maintain_v and_o preserve_v these_o overture_n be_v already_o twice_o make_v upon_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o publication_n of_o this_o council_n to_o wit_n at_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n at_o blois_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n at_o melun_n we_o think_v it_o our_o duty_n not_o to_o give_v they_o over_o 13_o the_o provincicall_a synod_n hold_v at_o rouen_n 1581._o make_v this_o instance_n to_o the_o same_o prince_n after_o that_o a_o good_a number_n of_o bishop_n and_o proxye_n for_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a together_o with_o ecclesiastical_a person_n from_o all_o quarter_n of_o our_o province_n of_o normandy_n be_v meet_v in_o our_o metropolitan_a church_n at_o rouen_n they_o tender_v nothing_o more_o than_o earnest_o to_o solicit_v the_o publish_n and_o promulgation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n within_o this_o realm_n wherefore_o this_o our_o assembly_n by_o common_a consent_n have_v resolve_v to_o present_v their_o humble_a petition_n to_o our_o most_o christian_n king_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o be_v former_o do_v by_o the_o state_n of_o blois_n and_o the_o clergy_n convent_v at_o melun_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v for_o proof_n of_o his_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n to_o enjoin_v the_o publication_n of_o the_o say_a council_n whereby_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v well_o provide_v for_o which_o be_v observe_v to_o be_v daily_o impair_v and_o abate_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o council_n there_o be_v thirteen_o doubt_n propose_v to_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o final_a resolution_n to_o they_o the_o last_o whereof_o be_v a_o demand_n of_o the_o confirmation_n hereof_o which_o be_v condescend_v unto_o 14_o the_o provincial_a council_n of_o aix_n in_o provence_n 1585._o petition_v the_o king_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o act_n that_o he_o out_o of_o his_o singular_a piety_n will_v command_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v publish_v which_o have_v so_o exact_o provide_v against_o those_o danger_n wherein_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n be_v then_o implunge_v 15_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o these_o earnest_a solicitation_n which_o our_o ecclesiastic_n here_o make_v do_v proceed_v from_o they_o but_o rather_o from_o the_o pope_n one_o argument_n hereof_o which_o may_v be_v allege_v be_v this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o now_o interest_v herein_o for_o the_o most_o of_o the_o decree_n which_o concern_v they_o be_v admit_v and_o there_o be_v no_o default_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o unless_o it_o be_v on_o their_o part_n and_o one_o company_n of_o they_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o edict_n of_o blois_n the_o rest_n in_o divers_a other_o provincial_n counsel_n hold_v afterward_o in_o france_n the_o canon_n whereof_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o print_n at_o rouen_n 1581._o at_o bourge_n 1584._o at_o tours_n 1585._o and_o at_o aix_n in_o provence_n the_o same_o year_n all_o which_o be_v put_v out_o in_o print_n at_o many_o other_o place_n another_o argument_n may_v be_v the_o slight_a account_n they_o make_v of_o observe_v the_o council_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o depend_v mere_o upon_o they_o and_o which_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o do_v which_o plain_o show_v that_o all_o they_o do_v be_v but_o to_o humour_v another_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o of_o my_o own_o head_n but_o from_o claudius_n espensaeus_n a_o sorbon_n doctor_n do_v do_v we_o dally_v say_v he_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o serious_a or_o rather_o do_v we_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o those_o which_o desire_v a_o reformation_n under_o colour_n of_o decree_n what_o reformation_n can_v be_v expect_v from_o we_o who_o do_v not_o observe_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v so_o late_o decree_v 157._o he_o speak_v this_o to_o those_o prelate_n of_o france_n who_o be_v present_a in_o that_o council_n and_o after_o their_o return_n make_v no_o reckon_n of_o observe_v that_o discipline_n which_o depend_v main_o on_o they_o and_o be_v withal_o conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n see_v here_o say_v he_o that_o which_o they_o of_o trent_n ordain_v but_o where_o be_v it_o observe_v as_o for_o our_o bishop_n who_o be_v at_o trent_n and_o bonony_n there_o be_v not_o any_o of_o they_o that_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o his_o own_o person_n at_o least_o not_o any_o that_o i_o hear_v of_o 16_o and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n speak_v of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n 10._o but_o it_o be_v not_o long_o say_v he_o since_o they_o have_v determine_v this_o point_n the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v bring_v it_o late_o to_o a_o upshot_n but_o what_o be_v those_o pastor_n which_o come_v from_o thence_o and_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o make_n of_o those_o canon_n of_o reformation_n those_o injunction_n of_o residence_n and_o preach_v ere_o a_o whit_n more_o diligent_a in_o feed_v their_o flock_n or_o less_o silent_a in_o their_o pulpit_n after_o the_o council_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n their_o nonresidence_n be_v as_o great_a as_o former_o and_o they_o almost_o as_o dumb_a as_o ever_o they_o have_v rather_o tire_v than_o give_v over_o and_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o their_o live_n by_o those_o who_o style_n themselves_o reformer_n forsooth_o when_o indeed_o they_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o endure_v to_o be_v
reform_v by_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o by_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n i●_n they_o do_v somewhat_o for_o he_o to_o who_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o such_o a_o strict_a oath_n and_o who_o flatter_v and_o woo_v they_o extreme_o to_o do_v the_o deed_n but_o when_o the_o churchman_n of_o our_o age_n especial_o do_v any_o famous_a exploit_n against_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v news_n indeed_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o command_n which_o he_o have_v get_v over_o they_o and_o of_o the_o fear_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v lest_o they_o shall_v be_v sentence_v for_o heretic_n in_o these_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v always_o have_v recourse_n to_o they_o when_o they_o intend_v to_o do_v some_o ill_a office_n to_o our_o king_n and_o kingdom_n boniface_n the_o eight_o by_o a_o glose_v letter_n of_o his_o writ_n unto_o they_o endeavour_n to_o make_v they_o approve_v his_o injust_a proceed_n against_o philip_n the_o fair_a where_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n francia_fw-la those_o who_o hold_v that_o temporal_a matter_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o spiritual_a do_v not_o they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v two_o prince_n he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o parliament_n hold_v at_o paris_n where_o it_o be_v enact_v say_v he_o by_o underhand_a and_o beg_v voice_n that_o none_o shall_v appear_v before_o he_o upon_o the_o summons_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o report_n which_o be_v make_v to_o that_o assembly_n by_o m._n peter_n flotte_n who_o he_o call_v belial_n half_a blind_a in_o body_n and_o quite_o in_o understanding_n this_o be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v send_v in_o ambassage_n unto_o he_o by_o king_n philip_n to_o that_o say_n of_o he_o we_o have_v both_o the_o one_o power_n and_o the_o other_o make_v this_o reply_n in_o behalf_n of_o his_o master●_n you_o be_v verbal_a but_o we_o be_v real_a 1301._o as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o a_o english_a historian_n 17_o innocent_n the_o three_o do_v the_o like_a in_o his_o scuffle_n with_o philippus_n augustus_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n be_v put_v among_o the_o decretal_n wherein_o he_o omit_v no_o art_n to_o nuzle_v they_o up_o and_o persuade_v they_o that_o his_o proceed_n against_o the_o king_n and_o put_v their_o kingdom_n under_o a_o interdict_v be_v just_a as_o the_o learned_a cujacius_n have_v very_o well_o observe_v and_o indeed_o his_o project_n thrive_v so_o well_o that_o he_o win_v their_o consent_n at_o last_o hark_v how_o a_o french_a historian_n of_o we_o speak_v of_o it_o 1099._o the_o whole_a country_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v interdict_v at_o which_o the_o king_n be_v high_o offend_v after_o he_o have_v notice_n of_o it_o he_o strip_v all_o his_o bishop_n out_o of_o their_o bishopricke_n because_o they_o have_v consent_v to_o that_o interdict_v and_o command_v that_o their_o canon_n and_o clerk_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o their_o live_n expel_v out_o of_o his_o dominion_n and_o their_o good_n confiscate_v he_o discharge_v also_o the_o parish_n priest_n and_o seize_v upon_o their_o good_n the_o french_a bishop_n at_o first_o do_v stiff_o oppose_v gregory_n the_o four_o who_o side_v with_o the_o child_n against_o the_o father_n be_v mind_v to_o come_v into_o france_n to_o excommunicate_a lewes_n the_o gentle_a and_o they_o have_v put_v on_o this_o resolution_n 14._o to_o send_v he_o home_o again_o excommunicate_v if_o he_o come_v there_o to_o excommunicate_v i●_n but_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o he_o have_v such_o a_o stroke_n over_o they_o that_o he_o make_v they_o not_o only_o 44._o abandon_v but_o depose_v he_o he_o be_v vex_v by_o all_o his_o bishop_n say_v a_o ancient_a historian_n and_o more_o particular_o by_o they_o who_o be_v raise_v to_o those_o dignity_n from_o a_o low_a degree_n and_o such_o as_o come_v out_o of_o barbarous_a country_n be_v prefer_v to_o that_o height_n of_o honour_n and_o he_o afterward_o add_v they_o say_v and_o do_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o like_a be_v never_o hear_v of_o use_v reproachful_a speech_n towards_o he_o they_o take_v his_o sword_n from_o his_o side_n upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o a_o sackcloth_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o not_o long_o after_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o proceed_n they_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o former_a dignity_n of_o which_o they_o have_v despoil_v he_o and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rheims_n ebon_n by_o name_n who_o have_v be_v the_o main_a man_n among_o they_o declare_v himself_o in_o writing_n ibid._n that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v attempt_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v against_o all_o right_a and_o reason_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o accuse_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n for_o this_o for_o many_o of_o they_o be_v offend_v with_o it_o and_o particular_o those_o of_o the_o province_n of_o belgia_n depose_v ebon_n their_o archbishop_n upon_o this_o occasion_n condemn_v his_o proceed_n herein_o but_o let_v we_o now_o ret●rne_v to_o our_o intend_a subject_n 18_o one_o of_o the_o king_n lieutenant_n general_a for_o administration_n of_o justice_n in_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n particular_a under_o the_o late_a king_n 1588._o for_o the_o reestablish_n say_v he_o and_o better_o settle_v of_o christian_a religion_n within_o this_o kingdom_n ●●er●_n our_o suit_n unto_o the_o king_n be_v that_o like_o a_o most_o christian_n and_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o will_v receive_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v inviolable_o observe_v by_o all_o his_o subject_n if_o any_o here_o will_v interpose_v and_o tell_v i_o that_o there_o be_v some_o article_n in_o it_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n and_o some_o other_o which_o seem_v too_o harsh_a and_o against_o the_o form_n of_o justice_n now_o use_v in_o france_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a may_n more_o wise_o advise_v of_o this_o in_o the_o assembly_n general_a of_o the_o state_n and_o if_o need_v so_o be_v communicate_v it_o with_o the_o other_o order_n to_o make_v a_o remonstrance_n thereof_o to_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n by_o this_o mean_v all_o those_o edict_n which_o to_o the_o great_a regret_n of_o the_o king_n the_o prince_n and_o catholic_a subject_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n do_v tolerate_v this_o medley_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v repeal_v and_o abolish_v 19_o among_o those_o great_a disorder_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n this_o very_a council_n be_v call_v in_o question_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o paris_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o state_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o league_n where_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o those_o who_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o royal_a yoke_n and_o undermine_v all_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n how_o distemper_v soever_o they_o be_v yet_o they_o have_v their_o judgement_n so_o sound_a as_o to_o discern_v a_o good_a many_o decree_n in_o that_o council_n which_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o this_o kingdom_n 1593._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o extract_n which_o be_v publish_v hereupon_o we_o may_v observe_v by_o the_o way_n that_o those_o who_o raise_v the_o most_o false_a and_o abominable_a calumny_n against_o the_o late_a king_n that_o ever_o be_v hear_v of_o in_o all_o their_o defamatory_n libel_n never_o object_v this_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o will_v use_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o of_o that_o damnable_a script_n hammer_v out_o in_o hell_n regno_fw-la of_o the_o just_a deposall_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n which_o set_v down_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o excommunication_n make_v he_o a_o murderer_n a_o heretic_n a_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n simoniacal_a a_o sacrilegious_a approver_n of_o duel_n a_o profaner_n of_o religious_a person_n a_o confederate_a with_o heretic_n a_o spender_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o leave_n from_o the_o pope_n a_o falsifier_n of_o the_o letter_n apostolic_a a_o superstitious_a fellow_n a_o deteiner_n of_o churchman_n but_o not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent●_n although_o he_o have_v in_o that_o point_n be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o make_v small_a account_n of_o his_o earnest_n and_o often_o request_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o speech_n which_o come_v to_o our_o hear_n be_v deliver_v in_o his_o behalf_n and_o upon_o his_o motion_n 20_o nay_o more_o council_n he_o do_v not_o receive_v so_o much_o as_o those_o very_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v no_o way_n repugnant_a to_o our_o liberty_n and_o
the_o observation_n whereof_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n but_o suppress_v the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n they_o decree_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n in_o the_o parliament_n at_o blois_n 1579._o ah_o plain_a proof_n that_o it_o be_v reject_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o france_n which_o be_v evident_o verify_v by_o compare_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n with_o the_o article_n of_o this_o assembly_n as_o in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o 14._o residence_n of_o bishop_n the_o 22._o maintenance_n of_o curate_n erection_n of_o 24._o school_n and_o schoolmaster_n the_o bring_n of_o 27._o exempt_v monastery_n under_o the_o visitation_n of_o certain_a congregation_n the_o 28._o age_n require_v in_o religious_a man_n and_o woman_n before_o they_o profess_v the_o 29._o age_n of_o such_o as_o enter_v into_o holy_a order_n the_o 30._o visitation_n of_o monastery_n by_o bishop_n the_o 31._o reinforcing_a of_o the_o cloysture_n of_o religious_a house_n 34._o prebend_n for_o divine_n ask_v the_o 40._o bane_n of_o matrimony_n before_o marriage_n and_o such_o like_a yea_o more_o in_o many_o of_o these_o point_n they_o derogate_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n and_o prescribe_v quite_o different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v there_o set_v down_o the_o like_a be_v do_v before_o by_o a_o ordinance_n at_o orleans_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n 1561._o whereby_o our_o king_n have_v show_v the_o power_n they_o have_v in_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o the_o sleight_n regard_v they_o have_v to_o that_o silly_a conventicle_n 21_o we_o will_v conclude_v then_o that_o see_v two_o of_o our_o king_n very_o zealous_a in_o their_o religion_n assist_v by_o a_o council_n no_o way_n liable_a to_o suspicion_n will_v yet_o never_o give_v way_n to_o this_o publication_n so_o often_o entreat_v desire_a and_o urge_v from_o they_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o this_o council_n comprehend_v something_o prejudicial_a to_o this_o state_n consider_v withal_o that_o all_o the_o mitigation_n which_o be_v seek_v after_o now_o adays_o be_v then_o propose_v as_o namely_o that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n and_o without_o ever_o draw_v the_o sword_n against_o those_o of_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o two_o main_a plaster_n which_o seem_v to_o salve_v up_o all_o the_o badness_n that_o be_v presume_v to_o lie_v lurk_v in_o it_o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o show_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o this_o refusal_n which_o we_o shall_v do_v by_o lay_v down_o the_o nullity_n which_o be_v both_o in_o the_o form_n and_o matter_n of_o it_o chap._n iii_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o party_n can_v not_o call_v the_o council_n nor_o preside_v in_o it_o and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o appeal_n from_o he_o pa●ty_n 1_o annullity_n in_o the_o form_n of_o this_o council_n be_v argue_v first_o from_o this_o that_o it_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o do_v preside_v in_o it_o yea_o and_o do_v defer_v and_o transfer_v it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o plea_n hereupon_o be_v this_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o formal_a party_n that_o it_o be_v he_o be_v urge_v to_o a_o reformation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v leave_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o the_o emperor_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o great_a 32._o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n who_o after_o he_o have_v conclude_v that_o the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n add_v notwithstanding_o that_o in_o default_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n now_o there_o can_v be_v no_o fair_a opportunity_n than_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v take_v for_o a_o party_n another_o legate_n doctor_n say_v that_o the_o defect_n of_o that_o power_n in_o the_o church_n be_v supply_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o rescrip_n another_o yet_o that_o when_o the_o controversy_n be_v touch_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o cause_n than_o his_o authority_n be_v not_o requisite_a for_o the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o law_n receive_v among_o the_o canonist_n themselves_o that_o when_o the_o will_n and_o consent_n of_o any_o man_n be_v require_v to_o some_o act_n such_o requirall_n have_v no_o place_n then_o when_o a_o point_n be_v plead_v against_o himself_o 2_o ludovicus_n barvarus_fw-la and_o all_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n with_o he_o do_v plead_v this_o nullity_n against_o the_o sentence_n and_o proceed_n of_o john_n the_o 22._o and_o of_o his_o council_n 45._o the_o three_o reason_n say_v he_o be_v because_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o do_v justice_n to_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a case_n that_o this_o say_v john_n pretend_v to_o have_v a_o plenitude_n of_o power_n over_o we_o and_o our_o empire_n even_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o do_v actual_o conspire_v against_o we_o and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o he_o attempt_v to_o usurp_v and_o cause_v we_o to_o be_v pursue_v like_o a_o enemy_n 3_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v both_o judge_n and_o party_n in_o any_o case_n whatsoever_o 6._o hence_o we_o collect_v say_v it_o that_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v at_o variance_n with_o any_o body_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n himself_o but_o to_o choose_v arbitrator_n ●ontanus_fw-la some_o of_o the_o canonist_n have_v write_v also_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v accuse_v of_o false_a doctrine_n he_o have_v no_o more_o power_n to_o call_v counsel_n all_o these_o reason_n hold_v good_a suppose_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v by_o right_a the_o power_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n which_o yet_o be_v deny_v as_o we_o shall_v prove_v more_o at_o large_a in_o another_o place_n beside_o there_o be_v some_o appeal_v put_v up_o from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o council_n as_o be_v relate_v by_o sleidan_n in_o the_o first_o of_o his_o commentary_n luther_n say_v he_o be_v advertise_v by_o cajetans_n loiter_v that_o they_o will_v proceed_v against_o he_o at_o rome_n he_o thereupon_o draw_v a_o ne●_n appeal_v november_n the_o 28._o and_o a_o little_a after_o be_v press_v and_o pinch_v with_o extreme_a necessity_n he_o be_v glad_a to_o appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o a_o future_a council_n and_o also_o by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o cullen_n be_v excommunicate_a by_o paul_n the_o three_o 1546_o because_o he_o go_v about_o to_o reform_v his_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o bull_n set_v forth_o by_o leo_n the_o ten_o against_o luther_n and_o his_o adherent_n appeal_v thereupon_o to_o the_o future_a council_n ●ontanus_fw-la 4_o we_o have_v discourse_v in_o the_o last_o book_n say_v sleidan_n how_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v denounce_v by_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o archbishop_n of_o cullen_n upon_o the_o sixteen_o of_o april_n who_o have_v c●rtaine_a notice_n of_o it_o the_o four_o of_o november_n he_o put_v forth_o a_o book_n present_o after_o pope_n wherein_o he_o give_v his_o reason_n why_o he_o refuse_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o judge_n because_o he_o have_v stand_v a_o long_a time_n accuse_v of_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n wherefore_o he_o appeal_v from_o his_o sentence_n to_o a_o lawful_a council_n of_o germany_n wherein_o he_o protest_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v open_v he_o will_v implead_v the_o pope_n as_o a_o party_n and_o prosecute_v against_o he_o the_o protestant_n as_o be_v well_o know_v do_v the_o like_a diverse_a time_n there_o be_v also_o another_o appeal_n to_o a_o future_a council_n put_v in_o by_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n may_v the_o 27._o 1517_o about_o the_o repeal_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o of_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n by_o leo_n the_o ten_o in_o the_o act_n of_o which_o appeal_n these_o word_n be_v insert_v 61._o we_o the_o rectour_n and_o the_o university_n find_v ourselves_o grieve_v wrong_a and_o oppress_v as_o well_o for_o ourselves_o as_o for_o all_o other_o subject_n to_o our_o university_n and_o all_o such_o as_o will_v take_v part_n with_o it_o do_v appeal_n from_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n ill-advised●_a to_o a_o future_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o a_o safe_a place_n whither_o we_o may_v free_o and_o bold_o go_v about_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n late_o set_v forth_o by_o these_o new_a decree_n notwithstanding_o which_o appeal_v the_o pope_n be_v set_v over_o the_o council_n by_o the_o father_n assemble_v at_o trent_n now_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n never_o see_v nor_o hear_v of_o that_o he_o
in_o these_o time_n for_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o take_n up_o of_o their_o quarrel_n he_o speak_v thus_o suspecti_fw-la i_o ask_v where_o be_v that_o which_o be_v able_a to_o pass_v the_o judgement_n which_o they_o pretend_v shall_v it_o be_v among_o they_o so_o the_o same_o enemy_n shall_v be_v both_o witness_n and_o judge_n but_o even_o humane_a affair_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o such_o a_o judgement_n how_o much_o less_o divine_a and_o ecclesiastical_a every_o wise_a man_n do_v perceive_v say_v we_o then_o that_o those_o who_o be_v out_o of_o favour_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n be_v wise_a and_o well-advised_a that_o they_o will_v not_o trust_v themselves_o to_o his_o judgement_n pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o who_o quote_v these_o two_o example_n in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o the_o emperor_n michael_n give_v we_o this_o rule_n 35._o that_o our_o enemy_n and_o those_o who_o we_o suspect_v shall_v not_o be_v our_o judge_n which_o as_o he_o say_v be_v decree_v at_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o give_v this_o reason_n of_o it_o because_o nature_n teach_v we_o to_o avoid_v the_o plot_n of_o suspect_a judge_n and_o refuse_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o enemy_n after_o all_o this_o gratian_n make_v this_o conclusion_n that_o how_o manifest_a so_o ever_o a_o man_n offence_n be_v he_o shall_v not_o for_o all_o that_o be_v condemn_v by_o his_o enemy_n it_o be_v superfluous_a here_o to_o allege_v the_o civil_a law_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o enmity_n of_o the_o judge_n give_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o refuse_v he_o in_o point_n of_o judgement_n see_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n well_o enough_o know_v chap._n vi_o that_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o divers_a trouble_n and_o tumult_n the_o hatred_n of_o the_o pope_n towards_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n do_v show_v itself_o so_o full_o before_o that_o it_o burst_v out_o into_o cruel_a war_n where_o we_o may_v observe_v a_o egregious_a nullity_n of_o the_o council_n in_o all_o the_o session_n thereof_o in_o that_o it_o be_v begin_v continue_v and_o end_v among_o the_o trouble_n raise_v against_o the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n and_o they_o of_o the_o religion_n in_o france_n by_o the_o instigation_n and_o inducement_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o instrument_n this_o be_v evidence_v by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o for_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ten_o session_n hold_v september_n the_o 14._o 1547._o the_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr the_o pope_n legate_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n speak_v thus_o beside_o these_o difficulty_n there_o be_v the_o heynousnesse_n and_o enormity_n of_o a_o unexpected_a accident_n which_o befall_v the_o person_n of_o the_o most_o illustrious_a duke_n of_o placentia_n which_o do_v so_o take_v up_o our_o employment_n for_o the_o defence_n and_o safeguard_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o city_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v not_o in_o safety_n one_o hour_n no_o not_o one_o minute_n of_o a_o hour_n the_o pope_n legate_n make_v this_o remonstrance_n in_o the_o six_o session_n that_o of_o a_o sudden_a there_o be_v such_o broil_n and_o such_o war_n kindle_v they_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o council_n that_o the_o council_n be_v constrain_v as_o it_o be_v to_o stop_v itself_o and_o break_v off_o its_o course_n with_o no_o small_a inconvenience_n germany_n and_o all_o hope_n of_o proceed_v further_o be_v now_o quite_o take_v from_o it_o and_o so_o far_o be_v the_o holy_a council_n from_o redress_v the_o evil_n and_o incommodity_n of_o christian_n that_o contrary_a to_o its_o intention_n it_o have_v rather_o irritate_v than_o appease_v the_o heart_n of_o many_o 16._o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v for_o the_o continuation_n of_o it_o bearing_z date_n the_o 30._o of_o decemb_n 1560._o afford_v we_o such_o another_o testimony_n but_o say_v he_o as_o soon_o as_o new_a broil_n be_v raise_v in_o the_o neighbour_a part_n of_o germany_n and_o a_o great_a war_n be_v kindle_v in_o italy_n and_o france_n the_o council_n be_v afterward_o suspend_v and_o adjourn_v 2_o but_o it_o be_v requisite_a we_o make_v these_o trouble_v more_o plain_o evident_a see_v it_o be_v a_o most_o just_a exception_n against_o the_o council_n the_o protestant_n complain_v that_o the_o overhasty_a resolution_n make_v by_o the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n be_v purposely_o to_o wage_v war_n against_o they_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n say_v so_o downright_a in_o their_o letter_n whereas_o you_o buckle_v up_o yourselves_o to_o set_v upon_o we_o with_o force_n without_o once_o tell_v we_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o refer_v that_o to_o god_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o shall_v know_v what_o you_o accuse_v we_o of_o we_o will_v answer_v so_o as_o every_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o be_v wrong_v and_o that_o you_o undertake_v this_o war_n by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o antichrist_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o wicked_a council_n of_o trent_n though_o we_o give_v no_o credence_n to_o these_o letter_n yet_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o say_v to_o it_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o suitzer_n of_o the_o three_o of_o july_n 1546._o 1547._o 3_o we_o think_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o these_o villain_n will_v put_v we_o upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o fall_v to_o force_n and_o arm_n but_o have_v oft_o consider_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v pray_v god_n to_o let_v the_o light_n of_o his_o divine_a counsel_n shine_v upon_o we_o it_o be_v fall_v out_o fit_o that_o our_o most_o belove_a son_n in_o god_n charles_n emperor_n of_o the_o roman_n ever_o augustus_n be_v offend_v mere_o with_o the_o same_o villainy_n of_o those_o rogue_n that_o we_o be_v and_o for_o that_o a_o council_n be_v grant_v by_o we_o to_o the_o german_a nation_n main_o by_o his_o mean_n and_o at_o his_o entreaty_n those_o who_o despise_v it_o despise_v also_o his_o authority_n and_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v concern_v it_o as_o some_o do_v very_o injust_o and_o saucy_o have_v resolve_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n to_o revenge_v the_o holy_a cause_n of_o wrong_a truth_n which_o occasion_n as_o be_v without_o doubt_n offer_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n himself_o we_o very_o ready_o embrace_v be_v resolve_v to_o second_v the_o good_a intention_n of_o that_o great_a emperor_n with_o all_o the_o mean_n and_o force_n which_o either_o we_o or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v raise_v 4_o now_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v have_v a_o hand_n also_o in_o that_o design_n of_o war_n not_o only_o the_o historian_n relate_v but_o it_o may_v be_v fair_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o they_o never_o gainsay_v it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o any_o way_n likely_a that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v such_o a_o war_n to_o be_v make_v under_o their_o nose_n and_o they_o not_o approve_v of_o it_o while_o the_o preparation_n w●re_v make_v for_o it_o nay_o while_o the_o army_n be_v in_o the_o field_n and_o that_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o octavianus_n farnese_n the_o pope_n nephew_n and_o all_o be_v in_o a_o uproar_n and_o combustion_n the_o council_n make_v decree_n about_o the_o controversy_n of_o great_a importance_n when_o there_o be_v but_o a_o very_a small_a number_n of_o bishop_n there_o 5_o when_o julius_n the_o three_o come_v to_o the_o popedom_n in_o february_n 1550._o upon_o the_o emperor_n entreaty_n he_o ordain_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v continue_v where_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n a_o war_n be_v denounce_v against_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o upon_o a_o injust_a quarrel_n which_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o onuphrius_n 3._o a_o historian_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o life_n of_o that_o julius_n he_o give_v some_o hope_n say_v he_o of_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n when_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o declare_v by_o his_o ●ull_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o popedom_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v continue_v at_o trent_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o may._n and_o present_o after_o he_o add_v ●emporis_fw-la he_o unwitting_o put_v himself_o upon_o the_o war_n of_o parma_n and_o thereby_o set_v all_o italy_n nay_o all_o europe_n on_o fire_n another_o catholic_a historian_n say_v during_o the_o time_n that_o these_o thing_n pass_v upon_o the_o frontier_n of_o flanders_n and_o picardy_n the_o pope_n at_o the_o emperor_n request_n summon_v the_o council_n to_o trent_n council_n for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n because_o it_o be_v plai●e_o that_o bononia_n
the_o late_a king_n of_o navarre_n lieutenant_n general_n for_o the_o king_n over_o all_o this_o realm_n date_v the_o 26._o of_o may_v 1562_o contain_v a_o injunction_n to_o some_o suspect_a person_n of_o the_o religion_n to_o depart_v from_o paris_n where_o it_o be_v say_v as_o for_o the_o put_n in_o execution_n of_o the_o design_n which_o we_o have_v undertake_v to_o perform_v out_o of_o hand_n with_o the_o army_n of_o our_o say_a sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n against_o those_o that_o hold_v some_o city_n of_o this_o kingdom_n with_o prejudice_n to_o his_o authority_n and_o the_o obedience_n which_o belong_v unto_o he_o we_o have_v determine_v to_o depart_v within_o a_o few_o day_n from_o this_o city_n of_o paris_n with_o the_o say_a army_n and_o to_o cause_v all_o the_o force_n both_o horse_n and_o foot_n aswell_o within_o the_o say_a city_n as_o without_o to_o march_v along_o 9_o there_o be_v also_o another_o declaration_n set_v out_o concern_v the_o edict_n of_o peace_n by_o the_o same_o king_n charles_n at_o amboy_n march_v the_o 19_o 1562._o but_o it_o be_v not_o put_v in_o execution_n till_o the_o next_o year_n about_o june_n what_o time_n the_o king_n send_v certain_a commissioner_n through_o the_o several_a province_n to_o that_o effect_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o commission_n give_v out_o thereupon_o date_v the_o 18._o of_o june_n in_o the_o same_o year_n con●ilii_fw-la and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o our_o council_n be_v consummate_v the_o four_o of_o december_n 1563._o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o a_o oration_n of_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o council_n november_n the_o 23._o 1562_o make_v a_o long_a story_n of_o our_o misery_n in_o france_n cuncell_n and_o the_o war_n which_o be_v a_o foot_n there_o there_o be_v no_o spare_v of_o any_o thing_n say_v he_o army_n be_v raise_v succour_n be_v call_v in_o from_o all_o part_n entry_n be_v make_v by_o force_n yea_o the_o sword_n pierce_v our_o heart_n how_o victorious_a soever_o our_o hand_n be_v our_o good_n be_v take_v from_o we_o and_o the_o kingdom_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o miserable_a pass_n so_o then_o the_o case_n stand_v thus_o the●e_n be_v never_o a_o lawyer_n but_o will_v constant_o affirm_v that_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v those_o who_o go_v not_o thither_o may_v be_v right_v and_o that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o state_n wherein_o they_o be_v at_o first_o 10_o the_o king_n of_o france_n by_o reason_n hereof_o do_v prejudicate_v their_o subject_n of_o the_o religion_n yea_o and_o their_o catholic_n too_o who_o they_o re-estate_v in_o their_o former_a right_n 16._o notwithstanding_o all_o process_n make_v judgement_n and_o arrest_n grant_v during_o the_o trouble_n non-suit_n prescription_n both_o legal_a conditional_a and_o customary_a attachement_n of_o feud_n which_o happen_v during_o the_o trouble_n or_o issue_v from_o thence_o by_o course_n of_o law_n it_o stand_v with_o better_a reason_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v reestablish_v which_o concern_v point_n of_o religion_n which_o have_v ever_o be_v as_o good_a a_o cause_n of_o replace_v all_o thing_n be_v statu_fw-la quo_fw-la prius_fw-la as_o absence_n which_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o discourse_n of_o pope_n liberius_n with_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n in_o the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n 28._o from_o the_o letter_n which_o pope_n julius_n write_v thereupon_o to_o they_o of_o antioch_n and_o from_o that_o passage_n of_o s._n hilary_n excuso_fw-la i_o omit_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v pass_v without_o hear_v of_o the_o cause_n nor_o do_v i_o repeat_v how_o the_o sentence_n be_v extort_a against_o one_o that_o be_v absent_a however_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o where_o faith_n is●_n there_o shall_v be_v liberty_n the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n shall_v not_o endure_v this_o but_o i_o omit_v these_o thing_n not_o because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v slight_v but_o because_o there_o be_v other_o more_o intolerable_a the_o same_o may_v we_o say_v of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 11_o so_o then_o these_o war_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o many_o that_o will_v have_v go_v to_o the_o council_n can_v not_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v so_o often_o break_v off_o and_o prorogue_v and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o seem_v sometime_o to_o come_v to_o just_a nothing_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o proceed_v to_o the_o creation_n of_o new_a pope_n in_o the_o place_n of_o those_o that_o die_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o say_a council_n nor_o of_o the_o new_a cardinal_n which_o have_v otherwise_o be_v do_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n which_o of_o right_n belong_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n 37._o as_o we_o shall_v show_v in_o another_o place_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o great_a dispute_n in_o the_o consistory_n of_o rome_n when_o pius_n the_o four_o renew_v the_o council_n some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v end_v &_o that_o he_o shall_v call_v a_o new_a one_o other_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o be_v and_o that_o he_o ought_v only_o to_o continue_v it_o but_o the_o pope_n use_v such_o phrase_n in_o his_o bull_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v perceive_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o continuation_n or_o a_o new_a convocation_n some_o might_n haply_o take_v i_o up_o for_o lie_v if_o i_o have_v not_o onuphrius_n for_o my_o warrant_n 4._o but_o here_o arise_v a_o controversy_n whether_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o a_o new_a convocation_n the_o pope_n find_v out_o a_o wholesome_a remedy_n to_o set_v all_o man_n mind_n at_o quiet_a for_o he_o use_v such_o a_o form_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o bull_n of_o promulgation_n as_o may_v satisfy_v both_o party_n and_o withal_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n be_v no_o way_n impeach_v the_o use_n we_o make_v of_o this_o passage_n be_v that_o whereas_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n that_o council_n be_v sometime_o at_o so_o low_a a_o ebb_n that_o it_o be_v question_v whether_o it_o be_v end_v or_o no_o it_o will_v be_v a_o better_a way_n to_o have_v a_o new_a one_o which_o may_v be_v to_o the_o content_a of_o all_o part_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o our_o difference_n consider_v that_o this_o be_v desert_v and_o cast_v off_o that_o it_o do_v not_o discharge_v the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o a_o true_a council_n that_o it_o be_v so_o weak_a and_o feeble_a that_o it_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n 12_o here_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o the_o french_a ambassador_n at_o the_o council_n 1563_o have_v a_o express_a commission_n to_o urge_v that_o this_o last_o council_n may_v not_o be_v account_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o former_a and_o there_o be_v a_o express_a article_n against_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v put_v off_o by_o they_o at_o the_o beginning_n free_a 13_o the_o lord_n of_o ferrier_n and_o pibrac_n after_o their_o departure_n from_o the_o council_n when_o they_o be_v retire_v to_o venice_n write_v letter_n to_o king_n charles_n date_v november_n 25._o 1563._o wherein_o after_o they_o have_v acquaint_v he_o with_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o departure_n they_o give_v he_o notice_n that_o the_o council_n will_v move_v his_o majesty_n to_o send_v new_a ambassador_n which_o he_o can_v not_o do_v without_o great_a prejudice_n that_o the_o pope_n will_v cause_v they_o short_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o last_o session_n wherein_o it_o must_v be_v determine_v whether_o this_o council_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o first_o or_o for_o a_o new_a one_o that_o if_o it_o be_v conclude_v to_o be_v the_o same_o council_n as_o they_o be_v all_o incline_v that_o way_n the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o ever_o refuse_v to_o admit_v of_o the_o first_o shall_v hereby_o receive_v a_o great_a blemish_n and_o the_o proceed_n of_o king_n henry_n who_o protest_v against_o it_o shall_v be_v condemn_v 14_o these_o and_o other_o le●ters_n by_o i_o quote_v which_o i_o have_v see_v remain_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o good_a catholic_n who_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o produce_v they_o upon_o occasion_n with_o many_o other_o memorable_a act_n concern_v this_o subject_n chap._n vii_o that_o the_o place_n where_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v be_v not_o free_a it_o be_v urge_v moreover_o that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a and_o safe_a and_o that_o the_o suit_n be_v commence_v against_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n the_o council_n shall_v have_v be_v call_v within_o that_o country●_n according_a to_o the_o request_n exhibit_v by_o the_o body_n of_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n assemble_v at_o noremberg_n who_o word_n be_v these_o 173._o they_o can_v think_v of_o a_o more_o
powerful_a and_o present_a remedy_n than_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o emperor_n call_v a_o free_a council_n in_o some_o convenient_a place_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v as_o at_o strasburgh_n mayens_n cullen_n meant_v or_o at_o some_o other_o place_n convenient_a in_o germany_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o the_o german_a bishop_n assemble_v in_o a_o imperial_a diet_n at_o a●sburg_n 1547_o complain_v to_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o for_o not_o cause_v that_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o germany_n and_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o follow_v thereupon_o with_o the_o little_a good_a it_o do_v see_v the_o tenure_n of_o their_o letter_n set_v down_o by_o sleidan_n fontanus_n and_o not_o contradict_v by_o those_o that_o have_v write_v against_o he_o 2_o whereupon_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n send_v letter_n unto_o he_o the_o 14._o of_o september_n whereby_o they_o certify_v he_o of_o the_o state_n and_o danger_n of_o germany_n and_o say_v it_o may_v have_v be_v prevent_v if_o in_o good_a time_n the_o remedy_n have_v be_v apply_v by_o a_o general_a council_n to_o the_o disease_n when_o it_o be_v first_o a_o breed_n for_o which_o council_n they_o have_v often_o importune_v the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v procure_v so_o much_o as_o that_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v within_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n who_o be_v principal_o concern_v in_o it_o may_v be_v there_o for_o consider_v their_o jurisdiction_n be_v of_o such_o a_o large_a extent_n it_o will_v be_v very_o inconvenient_a for_o they_o to_o travail_v out_o of_o their_o country_n especial_o at_o this_o time_n final_o by_o diligence_n of_o the_o emperour●_n when_o there_o wa●_n not_o a_o live_a soul_n to_o be_v find_v at_o mantua_n nor_o vicenza_n the_o council_n be_v conclude_v upon_o and_o begin_v but_o without_o the_o bound_n of_o germany_n namely_o at_o trent_n which_o belong_v rather_o to_o italy_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n there_o be_v so_o few_o german_n the●e_n nor_o indeed_o can_v they_o be_v especial_o in_o a_o time_n of_o war_n when_o all_o the_o passage_n be_v stop_v and_o guard_v 3_o the_o protestant_n also_o have_v ever_o make_v the_o like_a demand_n in_o many_o several_a assembly_n of_o germany_n namely_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o free_a council_n place_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v hold_v in_o some_o imperial_a city_n of_o germany_n as_o well_o for_o the_o liberty_n as_o for_o the_o convenience_n and_o beside_o because_o the_o difference_n in_o religion_n be_v bear_v there_o 4_o i_o will_v set_v down_o only_o what_o they_o say_v in_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o they_o to_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o date_v august_n the_o 11._o 1546._o any_o body_n say_v they_o may_v easy_o see_v and_o perceive_v that_o this_o be_v none_o of_o the_o council_n with_o the_o vain_a hope_n and_o promise_n whereof_o you_o have_v a_o long_a time_n feed_v we_o in_o many_o diet_n to_o wit_n of_o a_o general_a christian_n and_o free_a council_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o germany_n as_o we_o and_o our_o associate_n in_o religion_n have_v make_v remonstrance_n to_o your_o majesty_n in_o the_o last_o diet_n at_o worm_n 5_o the_o king_n of_o england_n demand_v likewise_o that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v in_o a_o place_n free_a and_o safe_a out_o of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n and_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o italy_n be_v the_o place_n assign_v he_o protest_v against_o it_o as_o null_n in_o the_o year_n 1537._o his_o life_n lie_v at_o stake_n say_v he_o that_o dare_v reprove_v the_o pope_n 11._o and_o accuse_v he_o to_o his_o face_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o a_o lawful_a council_n nor_o he_o nor_o he_o be_v secure_v by_o safe_a conduct_n and_o say_v he_o be_v there_o be_v apparent_a danger_n and_o good_a reason_n why_o he_o shall_v not_o come_v there_o for_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n with_o the_o pope_n to_o violate_v their_o faith_n to_o stain_v and_o imbrue_v themselves_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o innocent_n and_o howsoever_o other_o may_v safe_o go_v thither_o for_o his_o part_n he_o can_v not_o for_o evident_a reason_n for_o the_o pope_n lie_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o and_o hate_v he_o mortal_o 6_o the_o king_n of_o france_n make_v the_o like_a instance_n in_o the_o protestation_n which_o he_o send_v to_o trent_n and_o be_v present_v by_o monsieur_n james_n amiot_n abbot_n of_o bellosane_n the_o first_o of_o september_n 1551._o for_o after_o he_o have_v make_v rehearsal_n of_o the_o war_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v raise_v up_o against_o he_o he_o show_v 36●_n that_o he_o can_v not_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o his_o realm_n unto_o the_o council_n see_v they_o can_v not_o have_v free_a and_o safe_a access_n now_o this_o demand_n of_o the_o freedom_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n be_v no_o new_a thing_n but_o have_v be_v put_v up_o at_o other_o time_n upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n the_o university_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o act_n of_o their_o appeal_n whereof_o we_o speak_v before_o make_v express_v mention_n of_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n to_o which_o the_o appeal_n shall_v be_v bring_v the_o father_n in_o the_o second_o pisan_n council_n offer_v pope_n julius_n the_o second_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o a_o council_n of_o his_o call_n but_o not_o in_o rome_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o but_o in_o some_o other_o free_a place_n where_o they_o need_v not_o fear_v yea_o they_o name_v ten_o city_n to_o he_o in_o several_a place_n of_o christendom_n that_o he_o may_v make_v choice_n of_o one_o or_o they_o will_v give_v he_o his_o choice_n to_o name_v ten_o in_o italy_n so_o they_o be_v not_o under_o his_o jurisdiction_n nor_o under_o the_o venetian_n 7_o the_o delegate_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n at_o rome_n by_o the_o same_o council_n according_a to_o the_o commission_n which_o be_v give_v they_o make_v proffer_n to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n of_o all_o peace_n unity_n and_o obedience_n always_o provide_v they_o shall_v agree_v of_o a_o common_a place_n of_o safety_n and_o which_o stand_v neuter_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o general_a council_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o suspect_v both_o by_o they_o and_o many_o more_o but_o it_o be_v fit_v we_o here_o translate_v word_n for_o word_n the_o reason_n which_o be_v urge_v by_o that_o same_o council_n of_o pisa_n in_o their_o apology_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n who_o be_v obstinate_o bend_v to_o have_v the_o council_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n 8_o god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v think_v the_o lateran_n a_o safe_a place_n to_o meet_v in_o and_o treat_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n 1512●_n with_o safety_n and_o truth_n we_o much_o suspect_v there_o be_v some_o ambush_n lurk_v in_o the_o lateran_n and_o therefore_o from_o henceforth_o we_o do_v most_o resolute_o and_o earnest_o refuse_v it_o a●_n a_o place_n notorious_o and_o evident_o suspect_v as_o dreadful_a and_o dangerous_a to_o our_o life_n especial_o now_o when_o we_o stand_v upon_o other_o protestation_n we_o confess_v indeed_o and_o that_o confident_o that_o place_n i●_n very_o fit_v and_o most_o safe_a for_o projector_n there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o man_n apology_n well_o furnish_v both_o foot_n and_o horse_n there_o be_v strong_a fort_n a_o navy_n not_o far_o off_o and_o last_o the_o city_n itself_o with_o the_o adjacent_a people_n train_v up_o in_o arm_n and_o accustom_v to_o the_o war_n all_o at_o the_o pope_n devotion_n there_o be_v captain_n which_o make_v but_o small_a reckon_n of_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n when_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o the_o cardinal_n be_v already_o possess_v with_o this_o fear_n be_v not_o in_o case_n to_o counsel_v what_o be_v true_a but_o what_o will_v please_v nay_o there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n alive_a but_o will_v take_v his_o oath_n without_o scruple_n that_o the_o place_n design_v at_o rome_n be_v full_a of_o treachery_n and_o very_o dangerous_a both_o for_o those_o who_o call_v the_o council_n at_o pisa_n and_o all_o those_o that_o be_v present_a there_o and_o we_o know_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o world_n so_o certain_a but_o be_v less_o certain_a than_o what_o we_o say_v before_o if_o then_o the_o come_n into_o the_o city_n at_o this_o time_n be_v general_o repute_v and_o esteem_v to_o be_v with_o the_o great_a hazard_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o father_n this_o refusal_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v offensive_a for_o what_o man_n be_v he_o as_o clement_n the_o five_o say_v that_o will_v easy_o come_v before_o a_o judge_n guard_v with_o a_o strong_a army_n who_o dare_v or_o can_v be_v think_v to_o appear_v willing_o before_o he_o and_o put_v himself_o into_o their_o clutch_n who_o violence_n
keep_v and_o the_o fault_n be_v put_v upon_o the_o prince_n of_o mantua_n be_v not_o this_o to_o gull_v the_o world_n the_o prince_n of_o mantua_n wrong_v no_o body_n if_o he_o will_v not_o abandon_v his_o city_n to_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n without_o a_o garrison_n but_o all_o the_o blame_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o pope_n who_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o go_v roundly_o about_o the_o business_n but_o be_v ever_o a_o play_a trick_n and_o treachery_n if_o he_o remove_v the_o council_n to_o another_o place_n he_o must_v take_v a_o city_n that_o belong_v to_o some_o of_o his_o feudatary_a prince_n or_o else_o one_o of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o have_v a_o goodly_a patrimony_n with_o many_o fair_a city_n get_v by_o his_o predecessor_n either_o by_o force_n or_o knavery_n and_o now_o keep_v by_o he_o by_o the_o bad_a title_n of_o coven_n and_o fraud_n now_o see_v that_o almost_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n do_v despair_n of_o ever_o see_v a_o true_a council_n he_o think_v it_o most_o fit_a that_o every_o magistrate_n reform_v religion_n among_o his_o own_o people_n if_o the_o pope_n plead_v custom_n that_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n for_o as_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v custom_n without_o truth_n be_v but_o a_o inveterate_a and_o ground_a error_n therefore_o this_o be_v his_o advice_n and_o this_o he_o think_v the_o best_a course_n but_o if_o any_o know_v a_o better_a he_o will_v ready_o embrace_v it_o 6_o now_o the_o king_n of_o england_n never_o desert_v these_o protestation_n and_o declaration_n much_o less_o the_o protestant_n nay_o they_o repeat_v they_o divers_a time_n after_o 1561._o and_o among_o the_o rest_n at_o a_o assembly_n at_o worm_n hold_v 1545._o and_o another_o a_o naumburg_n the_o year_n 1561_o where_o a_o answer_n be_v give_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n to_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o his_o legate_n who_o come_v thither_o to_o summon_v they_o to_o appear_v at_o the_o council_n 7_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o other_o protestation_n make_v against_o the_o council_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o protest_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n in_o the_o year_n 1551_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n 179._o that_o the_o publication_n of_o it_o which_o be_v make_v regard_v not_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n catholic_a but_o the_o commodity_n of_o some_o particular_n that_o it_o seem_v the_o pope_n will_v exclude_v he_o from_o it_o that_o the_o beginning_n progress_n and_o issue_n of_o his_o holiness_n design_n do_v intimate_v as_o much_o that_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o war_n which_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o against_o he_o he_o can_v not_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n thither_o see_v they_o can_v not_o have_v safe_a and_o free_a access_n and_o that_o neither_o he_o nor_o the_o people_n of_o france_n nor_o the_o prelate_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n will_v be_v bind_v to_o it_o hereafter_o 8_o king_n charles_n the_o nine_o upon_o notice_n that_o all_o thing_n go_v amiss_o in_o the_o council_n and_o that_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n catholic_n thing_n be_v not_o satisfy_v that_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o apply_v to_o such_o thing_n as_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o and_o be_v require_v to_o be_v reform_v yea_o more_o that_o they_o entrench_v upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france●_n and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n cause_v protestation_n to_o be_v make_v by_o his_o ambassador_n against_o the_o same_o council_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o oration_n make_v by_o m._n arnald_n de_fw-fr ferrier_n the_o 22._o of_o september_n 1563._o where_o among_o other_o thing_n after_o he_o have_v lay_v down_o many_o grievance_n he_o say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n they_o be_v constrain_v concilio_n intercedere_fw-la ut_fw-la nunc_fw-la intercedebant_fw-la to_o interpose_v in_o the_o council_n as_o they_o interpose_v whereupon_o it_o be_v story_v that_o a_o certain_a prelate_n of_o the_o council_n not_o well_o understand_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n intercedere_fw-la which_o the_o tribune_n be_v wont_a to_o use_v of_o old_a when_o they_o make_v their_o opposition_n and_o hindrance_n ask_v his_o neighbour_n pro_fw-la qu●_n orat_fw-la rex_fw-la christianissimus_a what_o do_v the_o most_o christian_n king_n intercede_v for_o 9_o but_o say_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o join_v in_o judgement_n with_o he_o be_v not_o to_o blame_v say_v they_o be_v competent_a judge_n &_o such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v refuse_v say_v the_o proceed_n be_v lawful_a yet_o still_o it_o be_v a_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n pass_v upon_o man_n in_o their_o absence_n so_o that_o the_o door_n be_v open_a to_o all_o those_o that_o will_v enter_v their_o plaint_n they_o may_v just_o demand_v to_o begin_v anew_o and_o that_o thing_n be_v reduce_v to_o their_o first_o state_n a_o repeal_n may_v be_v have_v against_o a_o sentence_n give_v in_o case_n of_o contumacy_n only_o pay_v the_o charge_n but_o for_o they_o i_o think_v the_o pope_n that_o bo●e_n they_o will_v never_o ask_v they_o again_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o question_n whether_o his_o demand_n be_v good_a or_o no_o for_o who_o bid_v he_o be_v at_o the_o charge_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o it_o it_o be_v a_o liberality_n which_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o undergo_v to_o show_v his_o magnificence_n and_o in_o case_n he_o may_v redemand_v they_o he_o must_v commence_v his_o action_n either_o against_o those_o who_o he_o defray_v or_o against_o the_o emperor_n ¶_o who_o be_v ancient_o use_v to_o pay_v they_o and_o not_o against_o those_o who_o do_v now_o desire_v to_o justify_v themselves_o see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o constanc●_n and_o basil_n general_n counsel_n shall_v be_v hold_v every_o ten_o year_n 10_o let_v we_o proceed_v further_o and_o see_v if_o they_o can_v have_v any_o good_a ground_n to_o demand_v that_o a_o second_o judgement_n may_v be_v have_v suppose_v they_o have_v appear_v at_o the_o council_n and_o have_v audience_n there_o for_o this_o may_v be_v question_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n who_o complain_v now_o how_o he_o be_v wrong_v in_o his_o right_n and_o yet_o he_o have_v his_o ambassador_n resident_a at_o the_o council_n we_o say_v he_o be_v never_o the_o worse_o for_o all_o that_o consider_v that_o divers_a protestation_n be_v make_v against_o the_o council_n on_o both_o side_n this_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o some_o example_n 11_o we_o read_v how_o the_o donatist_n be_v many_o time_n condemn_v and_o that_o by_o many_o 2._o how_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a yea_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o those_o time_n bear_v with_o they_o in_o their_o reciduation_n without_o ever_o trouble_v they_o with_o writ_n of_o rejection_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o other_o such_o shackle_n of_o law-forme_n they_o be_v first_o sentence_v by_o pope_n miltiades_n and_o his_o council_n at_o rome_n from_o which_o they_o appeal_n their_o cause_n be_v afterward_o examine_v at_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a take_v the_o pain_n to_o hear_v they_o himself_o and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o under_o the_o emperor_n honorius_n and_o by_o his_o command_n there_o be_v a_o general_a conference_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n catholic_n and_o donatist_n at_o carthage_n in_o africa_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o catholic_n desire_v that_o conference_n so_o say_v st._n austin_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o disputant_n the_o emperor_n commission_n be_v read_v it_o be_v declare_v how_o the_o catholic_n have_v demand_v the_o conference_n and_o that_o it_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o 12_o it_o be_v well_o know_v how_o many_o counsel_n be_v call_v and_o keep_v to_o convince_v the_o arrian_n the_o first_o that_o be_v hold_v against_o they_o may_v have_v suffice_v namely_o that_o of_o nice_n consider_v the_o ●ame_n and_o worth_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v another_o general_n council_n hold_v at_o sardis_n where_o the_o emperor_n suffer_v they_o to_o dispute_v anew_o all_o that_o have_v be_v controvert_v and_o canvas_v and_o especial_o of_o that_o holy_a faith_n and_o the_o integrity_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o they_o have_v violate_v ariminum_n so_o say_v the_o father_n of_o that_o very_a council_n in_o a_o letter_n of_o they_o to_o pope_n julius_n and_o after_o that_o there_o be_v yet_o two_o other_o call_v both_o at_o one_o time_n one_o at_o ariminum_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n historico_fw-la the_o other_o at_o seleucia_n of_o the_o eastern_a where_o howbeit_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o the_o arrian_n yet_o they_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v supplant_v sacra_fw-la chief_o
by_o the_o impiety_n of_o some_o whereby_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v blemish_v for_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v not_o upon_o uncertainty_n but_o by_o the_o credible_a relation_n of_o hilary_n the_o deacon_n who_o flee_v away_o from_o thence_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o subscribe_v how_o that_o many_o ecclesiastiques_n arrive_v at_o the_o council_n who_o will_v have_v be_v very_o serviceable_a both_o for_o deliberation_n and_o judgement_n if_o he_o that_o assume_v unto_o he_o the_o first_o place_n will_v have_v contain_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o ecclesiastical_a modesty_n and_o be_v content_a as_o the_o manner_n be_v with_o a_o fair_a and_o equitable_a examination_n with_o all_o liberty_n of_o speak_v what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o faith_n and_o profitable_a for_o those_o that_o be_v in_o a_o error_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o be_v inform_v that_o all_o those_o that_o come_v to_o the_o council_n do_v not_o give_v voice_n the_o judgement_n t●en●_n and_o that_o some_o be_v put_v back_o and_o other_o some_o admit_v namely_o such_o as_o have_v render_v their_o hand_n captive_a for_o the_o subsign_v of_o those_o impious_a subscription_n know_v that_o it_o will_v go_v ill_a with_o they_o unless_o they_o do_v what_o they_o be_v enjoin_v and_o after_o that_o which_o our_o legate_n perceive_v they_o bold_o protest_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o after_o wherefore_o reverend_a emperor_n we_o entreat_v you_o to_o command_v that_o all_o thing_n abide_v in_o the_o same_o state_n they_o be_v before_o this_o judgement_n pass_v till_o such_o time_n as_o a_o great_a number_n of_o ecclesiastique_n be_v assemble_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o but_o may_v be_v say_v at_o this_o day_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o we_o have_v former_o prove_v and_o to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o evident_a we_o will_v add_v the_o protestation_n that_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o at_o divers_a time_n and_o by_o divers_a man_n that_o we_o may_v from_o thence_o conclude_v that_o neither_o absence_n nor_o presence_n can_v be_v any_o prejudice_n to_o those_o that_o now_o find_v fault_n with_o this_o council_n a_o review_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n book_n ii_o chap._n i_o of_o the_o denial_n of_o justice_n make_v by_o the_o council_n to_o such_o demand_n as_o be_v there_o propose_v by_o catholic_a prince_n 1_o have_v treat_v of_o such_o nullity_n as_o concern_v the_o form_n and_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n council_n we_o now_o come_v to_o those_o which_o concern_v the_o matter_n and_o these_o we_o make_v of_o two_o sort_n for_o they_o consist_v either_o in_o the_o denial_n of_o justice_n or_o in_o the_o make_n of_o injust_a decree_n for_o the_o first_o we_o may_v true_o say_v this_o council_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o satisfy_v the_o request_n and_o demand_n of_o christian_a prince_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o those_o the_o protestant_n make_v and_o other_o that_o have_v draw_v back_o from_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope●_n but_o only_o of_o such_o as_o be_v make_v by_o catholic_n the_o emperor_n the_o king_n of_o france_n the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n the_o whole_a german_a nation_n represent_v in_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n and_o other_o upon_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n some_o of_o those_o demand_n though_o but_o very_o few_o be_v take_v into_o consideration_n and_o judge_v by_o the_o council_n so_o that_o by_o consequence_n though_o the_o judgement_n be_v injust_a we_o can_v ground_v a_o plea_n of_o denial_n of_o justice_n upon_o they_o however_o not_o to_o divide_v they_o from_o the_o rest_n we_o shall_v here_o set_v they_o down_o after_o we_o have_v do_v with_o those_o that_o concern_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome●_n not_o meddle_v with_o other_o nor_o with_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n now_o in_o controversy_n which_o belong_v proper_o to_o divinity_n 2_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n by_o his_o ambassour_n as_o a_o catholic_a historian_n have_v it_o desire_v a_o reformation_n both_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n king_n to_o have_v the_o cardinal_n reduce_v to_o the_o number_n of_o twelve_o or_o twenty_o six_o at_o most_o a_o abrogation_n of_o scandalous_a dispensation_n a_o call_n in_o of_o immunity_n grant_v against_o common_a right_n a_o reduce_v of_o monastery_n under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n where_o they_o stand_v temporis_fw-la a_o abatement_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o canon_n and_o decree_n a_o repeal_n of_o many_o that_o be_v superstitious_a a_o reduce_v of_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n law_n prohibition_n against_o proceed_v to_o excommunication_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o mortal_a sin_n or_o public_a scandal_n a_o purge_n of_o masse-book_n and_o breviaries_n and_o expunction_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n a_o join_v of_o certain_a prayer_n &_o orison_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n together_o with_o the_o latin_a hymn_n communion_n under_o both_o kind_n a_o mitigation_n of_o that_o extreme_a rigour_n of_o fast_v and_o licence_n for_o eat_v flesh_n a_o permission_n for_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n a_o rase_v out_o of_o divers_a gloss_n upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o make_n of_o some_o new_a oath_n by_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n which_o all_o curate_n shall_v be_v bind_v upon_o great_a penalty_n to_o receive_v 3_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o ambassador_n have_v some_o such_o like_a article_n in_o their_o instruction_n as_o concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n excommunication_n the_o restore_n of_o the_o cup_n marriage_n of_o priest_n prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o for_o this_o last_o their_o instruction_n be_v express_v to_o demand_v that_o psalm_n may_v be_v sing_v the_o sacrament_n administer_v and_o a_o catechism_n make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o beside_o to_o assist_v all_o such_o as_o shall_v require_v a_o just_a reformation_n in_o all_o other_o matter_n the_o original_n of_o these_o instruction_n which_o i_o have_v see_v be_v sign_v by_o the_o late_a king_n charles_n the_o queen_n mother_n monsieur_z the_o duke_n of_o anjo●_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o rochesuryon_n the_o constable_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n the_o marshal_n memorancy_n the_o chancellor_n of_o the_o palace_n and_o some_o other_o ●●mporis_fw-la hereupon_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o orator_n say_v when_o they_o propose_v these_o demand_n that_o they_o do_v wonderful_o agree_v with_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n they_o have_v defer_v the_o proposal_n of_o they_o suppose_v that_o if_o the_o other_o be_v assent_v unto_o they_o shall_v also_o be_v satisfy_v but_o perceive_v the_o linger_n and_o delay_n that_o be_v use_v in_o that_o behalf_n and_o withal_o press_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n their_o master_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o make_v a_o motion_n of_o they_o they_o require_v further_o that_o all_o mandate_n of_o provision_n of_o benefice_n all_o reversion_n reassumption_n resignation_n hold_v of_o live_n in_o trust_n and_o commendam_n may_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o as_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n and_o that_o resignation_n in_o favour_n may_v be_v banish_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o forbid_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n that_o a_o course_n may_v be_v take_v for_o instruct_v the_o people_n what_o they_o ought_v to_o bel●eve_v concern_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o to_o clear_v it_o from_o all_o superstition_n and_o error_n if_o any_o be_v creep_v into_o it_o and_o the_o like_a essay_n to_o be_v make_v about_o indulgence_n pilgrimage_n relic_n of_o saint_n and_o fraternity_n that_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o public_a penance_n may_v be_v restore_v in_o the_o church_n for_o heinous_a and_o public_a offender_n but_o also_o public_a fast_n for_o the_o appease_n of_o god_n wrath_n that_o general_a counsel_n may_v be_v hold_v every_o ten_o year_n that_o for_o abridge_n of_o suit_n about_o benefice_n that_o distinction_n of_o petitory_a and_o possessory_a may_v be_v take_v away_o or_o rather_o for_o the_o utter_a extinguish_n of_o such_o suit_n that_o bishop_n may_v be_v enjoin_v to_o bestow_v they_o not_o upon_o such_o as_o seek_v after_o they_o but_o those_o that_o be_v worthy_a of_o they_o and_o avoid_v they_o and_o for_o certain_a proof_n of_o their_o merit_n to_o make_v they_o preach_v sometime_o and_o those_o such_o as_o have_v take_v some_o degree_n in_o the_o vniversities●_n upon_o who_o only_a live_n may_v be_v confer_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o people_n 134._o 4_o the_o catholic_a prince_n and_o all_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n assemble_v in_o a_o imperial_a diet_n at_o noremberg_n 1522_o
put_v up_o certain_a article_n in_o some_o point_n agree_v with_o these_o but_o in_o number_n far_o more_o which_o they_o impart_v to_o mr._n francis_n cheregat_n pope_n adrian_n the_o 6_o his_o legate_n upon_o the_o declaration_n which_o he_o make_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o adrian_n that_o for_o appease_v difference_n in_o religion_n and_o reform_v of_o abuse_n a_o free_a council_n shall_v be_v call_v germany_n he_o depart_v soon_o than_o any_o man_n expect_v it_o be_v decree_v to_o send_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v provide_v for_o their_o just_a demand_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n among_o other_o thing_n they_o complain_v against_o the_o forbid_a of_o meat_n and_o marriage_n at_o certain_a time_n of_o those_o mercenary_a dispensation_n whereby_o all_o that_o great_a rigour_n be_v remit_v for_o a_o little_a money_n against_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n by_o which_o mean_v germany_n have_v be_v poll_v and_o impoverish_v sin_n remit_v as_o well_o future_a as_o by_o past_a soul_n deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n remedy_n apply_v to_o all_o disease_n by_o promise_v the_o assistance_n of_o some_o particular_a saint_n against_o the_o weaken_n of_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n by_o draw_v all_o to_o rome_n and_o that_o at_o the_o suit_n of_o lay_v man_n nay_o the_o utter_a extirpation_n of_o it_o by_o the_o pope_n grant_v of_o conservator_n or_o send_v of_o commissary_n against_o the_o exemption_n and_o immunity_n grant_v to_o certain_a monastery_n by_o the_o pope_n the_o entrench_v upon_o the_o right_n of_o advowson_n the_o usurp_a of_o the_o benefice_n of_o such_o 〈◊〉_d die_v in_o the_o court_n of_o ro●●_n or_o in_o the_o way_n thither_o the_o trick_n that_o be_v use_v to_o hook_n in_o the_o benefice_n of_o such_o as_o converse_v with_o cardinal_n by_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v of_o their_o table_n nay_o even_o such_o as_o never_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n under_o colour_n that_o they_o be_v officer_n either_o of_o the_o pope_n household_n or_o of_o his_o court_n the_o many_o suit_n that_o be_v commence_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n about_o benefice_n even_o against_o those_o that_o have_v quiet_o enjoy_v they_o for_o many_o year_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n and_o indisposition_n of_o body_n be_v enforce_v to_o condescend_v to_o some_o injust_a condition_n to_o allow_v pension_n reversion_n and_o such_o like_a charge_n against_o the_o caution_n that_o be_v put_v in_o at_o rome_n for_o all_o kind_n of_o benefice_n the_o collation_n whereof_o do_v of_o right_a belong_v to_o the_o ordinary_n against_o reservation_n for_o the_o future_a confer_v of_o benefice_n upon_o stranger_n at_o rome_n and_o ignorant_a person_n as_o also_o the_o bestow_n of_o abbacy_n priorship_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o commendam_fw-la against_o the_o impunity_n of_o clergy_n man_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o privilege_n excommunication_n for_o petty_a matter_n and_o that_o even_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o neighbour_n which_o they_o can_v avoid_v against_o the_o interdict_a of_o a_o whole_a town_n or_o town_n upon_o the_o murder_n of_o a_o clerk_n against_o the_o excessive_a number_n of_o holy_a day_n against_o the_o abuse_n and_o attempt_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n almost_o in_o all_o cause_n and_o occasion_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o laity_n as_o also_o the_o abuse_n in_o excommunicate_v lay_v judge_n whereby_o they_o compel_v party_n to_o compound_v because_o they_o can_v have_v justice_n against_o the_o abuse_n commit_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o county_n palatine_n of_o his_o institution_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o it_o be_v too_o long_o to_o set_v down_o 5_o the_o orator_n of_o albert_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n according_a to_o his_o master_n command_n allier_n be_v very_o earnest_a for_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o for_o the_o former_a he_o first_o tell_v the_o occasion_n before_o he_o ●●kes_v his_o demand_n in_o the_o last_o general_a visitation_n say_v he_o overall_a bau●ria_n whoredom_n be_v find_v so_o frequent_a that_o scarce_o three_o or_o four_o of_o a_o hundred_o but_o be_v either_o common_a whoremonger_n or_o private_o marry_v or_o else_o public_o and_o he_o afterwards_o add_v man_n of_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n who_o have_v mo●e_n nee●ly_o and_o exact_o examine_v these_o thing_n be_v of_o opinion_n ●h●t_o to_o supply_v t●e_v scarcity_n of_o a_o learned_a clergy_n it_o will_v be_v very_o ●●rd_a to_o m●ke_v ●p_n so_o many_o as_o to_o suffice_v for_o divine_a service_n especial_o at_o this_o time_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n ●nle●●e_v it_o be_v by_o admit_v unto_o holy_a order_n such_o marry_a man_n as_o have_v learning_n and_o ability_n to_o instruct_v other_o as_o it_o be_v accustom_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n es●●●i●lly_a ●hat_n they_o may_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o other_o point_n hark_v w●at_a he_o say_v there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o that_o depart_v from_o we_o and_o side_n with_o those_o sectary_n that_o stand_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v express_v for_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n but_o for_o one_o kind_n only_o not_o a_o word_n whereto_o we_o m●y_v add_v that_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v frequent_a and_o evident_a not_o only_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n demand_n but_o in_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n at_o this_o day_n yea_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v not_o exempt_v ancient_o from_o this_o custom_n as_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o divers_a testimony_n of_o history_n last_o after_o many_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n he_o conclude_v 6_o that_o the_o most_o experience_a and_o wise_a catholic_n think_v that_o the_o people_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o desire_n of_o innovation_n can_v be_v keep_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a nor_o divert_v from_o a_o separation_n to_o which_o they_o be_v incline_v unless_o holy_a order_n and_o licence_n of_o preach_v be_v confer_v upon_o chaste_a marry_a man_n to_o take_v away_o the_o liquorish_a custom_n of_o keep_v concubine_n and_o also_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v allow_v to_o appease_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o incense_a multitude_n he_o go_v yet_o further_o and_o show_v that_o there_o be_v somewhat_o to_o be_v reform_v in_o matter_n of_o opinion_n and_o doctrine_n which_o notwithstanding_o he_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o till_o such_o time_n as_o this_o entrance_n upon_o a_o reformation_n be_v bring_v to_o some_o issue_n consider_v the_o jealousy_n he_o have_v lest_o that_o design_n may_v breed_v some_o trouble_n but_o when_o this_o be_v do_v say_v he_o it_o will_v be_v then_o full_a time_n when_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v at_o quiet_a among_o we_o to_o enter_v upon_o a_o more_o solid_a consideration_n of_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n now_o what_o manner_n of_o consideration_n that_o must_v be_v if_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n my_o most_o illustrious_a prince_n be_v not_o peradventure_o the_o only_a man_n that_o know_v but_o be_v plain_o perceive_v by_o the_o common_a voice_n and_o that_o not_o to_o be_v slight_v of_o devout_a catholic_n concern_v this_o point_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o his_o holiness_n opinion_n be_v demand_v herein_o he_o can_v without_o much_o entreaty_n inform_v what_o have_v be_v any_o way_n treat_v of_o concern_v this_o matter_n 7_o many_o more_o request_n and_o demand_n be_v put_v up_o aswell_o by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o forementioned_a prince_n as_o other_o which_o we_o can_v at_o this_o present_a se●_n down_o because_o we_o have_v not_o the_o act_n by_o we_o and_o it_o be_v far_o from_o our_o intention_n to_o speak_v any_o thing_n without_o proof_n we_o may_v here_o add_v the_o consultation_n which_o be_v make_v when_o the_o council_n be_v talk_v of_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o 1538_o 71_o by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n in_o number_n nine_o depute_v for_o that_o purpose_n to_o advise_v he_o what_o be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v about_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o act_n they_o say_v express_o that_o all_o the_o discord_n abuse_n and_o disease_n now_o reign_v in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v bring_v it_o almost_o past_a hope_n of_o recovery_n proceed_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o conceit_n which_o their_o flatterer_n have_v buzz_v into_o they_o that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o will_v that_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o benefice_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o commit_v simony_n consider_v that_o the_o proprietary_n may_v lawful_o sell_v what_o belong_v
our_o say_a cousin_n the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n his_o legate_n have_v promise_v unto_o we_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o say_a holiness_n and_o whereof_o indeed_o he_o have_v already_o make_v great_a overture_n for_o these_o cause_n and_o other_o consideration_n we_o thereunto_o move_v have_v a_o regard_n unto_o the_o foresay_a remonstrance_n make_v unto_o we_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o our_o most_o honour_a lady_n and_o mother_n the_o queen_n the_o prince_n of_o our_o blood_n and_o our_o privy_a council_n we_o have_v remove_v and_o take_v away_o and_o do_v hereby_o remove_v and_o take_v away_o the_o prohibition_n aforesaid_a and_o the_o penalty_n annex_v to_o be_v impose_v upon_o the_o offender_n against_o they_o by_o our_o edict_n and_o ordinance_n of_o orleans_n and_o do_v make_v void_a the_o ordinance_n aforesaid_a for_o the_o reason_n before_o mention_v 24_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v hold_v at_o the_o time_n when_o this_o declaration_n be_v make_v schismate_fw-la from_o which_o our_o king_n expect_v a_o great_a reformation_n concern_v the_o premise_n and_o particular_o consider_v what_o assurance_n the_o pope_n have_v give_v he_o hereof_o but_o all_o in_o vain_a whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o suspension_n cease_v the_o effect_n shall_v cease_v likewise_o and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v under_o the_o ordinance_n of_o orleans_n which_o be_v just_a and_o good_a to_o the_o observation_n whereof_o we_o ought_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v incline_v in_o as_o much_o as_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n and_o the_o account_n hereupon_o make_v by_o it_o unto_o lewes_n the_o 11_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o vacancy_n expectative_n and_o such_o like_a mean_n there_o go_v almost_o a_o million_o of_o crown_n from_o hence_o to_o rome_n every_o year_n which_o be_v further_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o magdenburg_n in_o germany_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n who_o have_v leave_v upon_o record_n that_o he_o learn_v from_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n then_o live_v that_o during_o the_o popedom_n of_o martin_n the_o five_o who_o sit_v 14_o year_n there_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n out_o of_o this_o realm_n of_o france_n only_o nine_o million_o of_o crown_n without_o reckon_v what_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o clergyman_n of_o inferior_a quality_n 25_o it_o be_v report_v by_o a_o english_a historian_n that_o henry_n the_o 3_o king_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1245_o cause_v a_o estimate_n to_o be_v take_v of_o the_o pure_a rent_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o that_o it_o be_v find_v they_o amount_v to_o as_o great_a a_o sum_n of_o money_n as_o all_o that_o he_o himself_o receive_v out_o of_o his_o realm_n nor_o reckon_v divers_a other_o commodity_n beside_o the_o like_a be_v affirm_v by_o all_o england_n together_o in_o a_o epistle_n send_v to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 4._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o receive_v more_o pure_a rent_n out_o of_o england_n than_o the_o king_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o guardian_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o hereupon_o the_o the_o transport_v of_o gold_n or_o silver_n to_o rome_n be_v forbid_v in_o this_o kingdom_n by_o many_o good_a statute_n make_v at_o several_a time_n saint_n lewes_n who_o among_o divers_a other_o make_v one_o hereabout_o express_o forbid_v all_o such_o exaction_n be_v nevertheless_o canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n king_n charles_n the_o 6_o henry_n the_o 2_o charles_n the_o 9_o and_o other_o be_v never_o think_v the_o less_o catholic_n for_o this_o nor_o the_o people_n of_o france_n that_o demand_v it_o in_o their_o counsel_n of_o state_n ever_o repute_v the_o less_o zealous_a in_o religion_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n will_v be_v the_o more_o honest_a man_n tax_n for_o there_o be_v nought_o that_o spoil_v they_o but_o too_o much_o ease_n and_o wealth_n and_o so_o they_o shall_v both_o clear_v themselves_o from_o that_o infamous_a crime_n of_o simony_n which_o all_o christian_n detest_v and_o abhor_v and_o also_o acquit_v all_o those_o that_o barter_v with_o they_o who_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o 24._o divine_v and_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o 71_o article_n of_o their_o remonstrance_n share_n with_o they_o in_o the_o sin_n also_o for_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n ●itati_fw-la flatterer_n who_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v they_o in_o their_o filthy_a write_n that_o though_o they_o practise_v simony_n yet_o they_o can_v be_v simoniacal_a this_o be_v to_o hood_n wink_v the_o eye_n against_o all_o truth_n and_o to_o sleep_v in_o a_o blind_a ignorance_n the_o man_n who_o be_v the_o most_o eminent_a for_o learning_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o who_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n and_o adjure_v by_o he_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o tell_v he_o the_o truth_n concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n tell_v he_o plain_o among_o other_o thing_n 1551._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o pope_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n these_o be_v their_o very_a word_n to_o make_v any_o gain_n out_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n commit_v unto_o he_o by_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v christ_n command_n say_v they_o free_o you_o have_v receive_v free_o give_v 26_o the_o emperor_n tempo●is_fw-la ferdinand_n in_o his_o demand_n put_v up_o at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n require_v that_o the_o ancient_a canon_n against_o simony_n may_v be_v restore_v now_o these_o ancient_a canon_n bind_v the_o pope_n as_o well_o as_o other_o bishop_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v no_o exception_n for_o he_o there_o but_o our_o council_n have_v no_o leisure_n to_o think_v of_o this_o i_o can_v here_o make_v a_o large_a discourse_n of_o the_o reservation_n of_o bishopriques_n and_o other_o dignity_n and_o benefice_n ecclesiastical_a of_o the_o grant_v out_o of_o grace_n and_o the_o next_o voydance_n of_o benefice_n of_o mandate_n of_o provision_n and_o other_o way_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v use_v and_o do_v use_v to_o this_o day_n to_o enhanse_v their_o revenue_n the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o king_n be_v full_o fraught_v with_o complaint_n make_v concern_v this_o particular_a as_o be_v also_o the_o work_n of_o divers_a author_n all_o those_o that_o ever_o meddle_v with_o reformation_n put_v always_o up_o some_o article_n about_o this_o point_n the_o deputy_n of_o paul_n the_o three_o have_v a_o whole_a chapter_n of_o it_o in_o their_o council_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n have_v condemn_v they_o the_o king_n of_o france_n desire_v the_o like_a in_o his_o demand_n yea_o and_o the_o council_n itself_o have_v take_v a_o order_n with_o they_o but_o it_o be_v with_o reservation_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n above_o all_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o put_v a_o gull_n upon_o all_o christendom_n see_v the_o reformation_n in_o this_o case_n be_v demand_v only_o against_o he_o inasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o man_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o disorder_n proceed_v and_o after_o this_o all_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v very_o well_o know_v and_o can_v testify_v how_o the_o pope_n do_v still_o practice_v these_o mean_n and_o whether_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o council_n have_v debar_v he_o of_o dispense_n his_o favour_n 27_o the_o pope_n not_o content_a with_o the_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o they_o get_v by_o these_o mean_n do_v use_v tax_n and_o tribute_n beside_o like_o secular_a prince_n not_o only_o upon_o clergy_n man_n but_o lay_v man_n also_o yea_o upon_o whole_a prince_n and_o kingdom_n gregory_z the_o 9_o the_o year_n 1229_o demand_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o all_o the_o movable_a good_n as_o well_o of_o the_o laity_n as_o clergy_n to_o maintain_v his_o war_n against_o the_o emperor_n frederick●_n tell_v they_o that_o he_o only_o have_v undertake_v that_o war_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a 349._o which_o demand_n henry_n the_o three_o king_n of_o england_n say_v a_o english_a monk_n have_v pass_v his_o word_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o officer_n for_o the_o pay_v of_o those_o ten_o have_v no_o way_n to_o gainsay_v but_o the_o earl_n and_o baron_n and_o all_o the_o laity_n do_v oppose_v it_o refuse_v to_o engage_v their_o barony_n and_o domain_v as_o for_o the_o bishop_n abbat_n priour_n and_o other_o prelate_n after_o three_o or_o four_o day_n consultation_n they_o at_o last_o condescend_v to_o it_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o murmur_a fear_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n in_o case_n of_o refusal_n as_o the_o monk_n have_v it_o word_n for_o
be_v true_a which_o the_o pope_n allege_v or_o no_o provide_v that_o in_o imitation_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n the_o clergy_n do_v not_o meet_v to_o determine_v such_o controversy_n elsewhere_o than_o in_o the_o king_n court._n on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o write_v to_o arteaga_n his_o proctor_n at_o rome_n to_o go_v and_o greet_v the_o pope_n with_o all_o reverence_n and_o offer_v unto_o he_o in_o his_o name_n not_o only_o the_o ten_o of_o his_o diocese_n but_o even_o all_o the_o commodity_n all_o the_o moveable_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o gold_n and_o silver_n coin_a or_o uncoyn_v which_o can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o priest_n coffer_n spline_n and_o the_o chapel_n and_o church_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v earnest_o entreat_v he_o withal_o open_o to_o declare_v his_o purpose_n and_o resolution_n concern_v the_o preparation_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n for_o he_o will_v never_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o make_v the_o spanish_a clergy_n tributary_n who_o he_o have_v appease_v have_v be_v already_o in_o some_o commotion_n without_o very_o just_a cause_n he_o enjoin_v his_o proctor_n also_o to_o inquire_v diligent_o what_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n concern_v those_o ten_o arteaga_n have_v inform_v the_o pope_n of_o these_o thing_n together_o with_o laurence_n putius_fw-la and_o julius_n de_fw-fr medicis_n cardinal_n the_o pope_n privado_n they_o make_v he_o answer_v in_o this_o sort_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o impose_v any_o ten_o upon_o the_o clergy_n neither_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n nor_o otherwise_o nor_o will_v he_o impose_v any_o but_o in_o case_n of_o extremity_n and_o when_o his_o affair_n do_v not_o only_o require_v but_o compel_v he_o so_o to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o last_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n but_o he_o lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o john_n ruffus_n archbishop_n of_o cosenza_n the_o pope_n nuncio_n in_o spain_n who_o have_v as_o they_o say_v divulge_v these_o thing_n very_o iudiscreet_o wherefore_o the_o clergy_n of_o spain_n may_v sleep_v secure_a for_o aught_o that_o concern_v the_o pay_v of_o ten_o and_o there_o be_v beside_o a_o bull_n of_o the_o pope_n show_v to_o the_o proctor_n which_o be_v short_o to_o be_v publish_v which_o concern_v the_o act_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n yet_o ximenius_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o understand_v all_o these_o passage_n from_o arteaga_n do_v not_o let_v for_o all_o that_o to_o call_v the_o clergy_n together_o who_o meet_v all_o at_o madrid_n a_o little_a before_o he_o go_v to_o tourverte_n for_o peter_n martyr_n who_o be_v present_a at_o that_o synod_n as_o proctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o granada_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o epistle_n declare_v how_o that_o it_o be_v adjudge_v by_o common_a consent_n to_o deny_v that_o ten_o which_o consultation_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n promise_v to_o patronize_v and_o defend_v it_o if_o need_v require_v it_o be_v also_o plain_a out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o bembus_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o leo_n that_o this_o ten_o be_v real_o exact_v and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o fly_a rumour_n or_o opinion_n but_o as_o i_o think_v in_o italy_n only_o or_o other_o of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n chap._n vi_o of_o other_o demand_n concern_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n 1_o consequently_n to_o what_o we_o have_v already_o deliver_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n concern_v the_o greediness_n and_o insatiable_a desire_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n we_o will_v set_v down_o this_o certain_a complaint_n and_o demand_n exhibit_v by_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n in_o this_o behalf_n the_o first_o whereof_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o proviso_n and_o clause_n make_v at_o rome_n concern_v all_o manner_n of_o benefice_n to_o the_o defeat_n of_o the_o patron_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o lay_v of_o their_o right_n of_o advowson_n by_o divers_a subtle_a fetch_n and_o all_o this_o for_o the_o great_a wealth_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n gain_v by_o this_o mean_n and_o which_o be_v bring_v in_o thither_o out_o of_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o province_n in_o christendom_n this_o demand_n deserve_v to_o have_v be_v well_o consider_v of_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o it_o be_v attend_v with_o many_o grievous_a complaint_n hereof_o make_v in_o divers_a age_n the_o statute_n of_o our_o king_n speak_v thorough_o of_o it_o and_o among_o other_o that_o of_o charles_n the_o eight_o of_o the_o 18_o of_o february_n 1406_o the_o word_n whereof_o be_v these_o some_o year_n ago_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o despite_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o general_n counsel_n have_v bring_v all_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n under_o their_o disposal_n bishop_n and_o all_o other_o of_o great_a value_n next_o after_o bishopriques_n they_o have_v grant_v live_n in_o reversion_n upon_o the_o vacancy_n to_o any_o that_o will_v sue_v for_o they_o which_o have_v be_v a_o occasion_n for_o one_o to_o thirst_v after_o the_o death_n of_o another_o they_o have_v invent_v abundance_n of_o trick_n whereby_o they_o have_v utter_o annihilate_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n chapter_n and_o college_n insomuch_o that_o there_o be_v none_o now_o that_o have_v the_o power_n to_o present_v to_o a_o live_n eugenium_fw-la 2_o s._n bernard_n touch_v this_o abuse_n to_o the_o quick_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr consideratione_n which_o he_o dedic●tes_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n never_o tell_v i_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v be_v free●_n i_o be_o make_v the_o servant_n of_o all_o the_o case_n be_v far_o otherwise_o with_o you_o for_o to_o my_o knowledge_n there_o come_v unto_o you_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n ambitious_a people_n covetous_a symoniacall_a sacrilegious_a adulterous_a incestuous_a and_o such_o like_a monster_n of_o man_n to_o obtain_v or_o retain_v ecclesiastical_a dignity_n by_o your_o apostolic_a authority_n etc._n etc._n 3_o the_o bishop_n of_o mende_n put_v up_o this_o abuse_n in_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n to_o be_v reform_v 7._o for_o after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o every_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n ought_v to_o be_v preserve_v entire_a to_o himself_o he_o add_v that_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o collation_n and_o disposal_n of_o bishop_n be_v bestow_v by_o the_o s●e_a apostolic_a and_o other_o even_o before_o they_o be_v void_a and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o out_o of_o it_o howbeit_o the_o bishop_n must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o cure_n and_o of_o those_o that_o execute_v they_o who_o conscience_n they_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o in_o asmuch_o as_o they_o be_v none_o of_o their_o prefer_n he_o will_v never_o have_v demand_v the_o reformation_n hereof_o unless_o the_o abuse_n have_v be_v notorious_a 4_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n his_o contempora●y_n tell_v we_o as_o much_o 24._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o reserve_v unto_o their_o own_o power_n immediate_o the_o bestow_n almost_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n yea_o even_o unto_o the_o mean_a &_o base_a office_n yea_o of_o such_o as_o may_v agree_v to_o mere_a lay_v man_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o concern_v church_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o reservation_n they_o abrogate_v and_o make_v void_a all_o election_n how_o legal_o soever_o they_o be_v make_v though_o of_o approve_a and_o sufficient_a man_n 5_o the_o cardinal_n of_o cambray_n put_v this_o also_o among_o those_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v reform_v in_o the_o church_n consider_v it_o be_v further_a expedient_a say_v he_o to_o provide_v against_o certain_a grievance_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o other_o prelate_n and_o church_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n namely_o about_o bestow_v of_o live_n and_o election_n of_o dignity_n nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangiis_n make_v a_o very_a bitter_a complaint_n against_o it_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ruina_fw-la &_o reparatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 1._o where_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n he_o say_v they_o have_v arrogate_a unto_o themselves_o the_o right_n of_o dispose_v of_o all_o church_n in_o all_o place_n as_o far_o as_o christian_a religion_n reach_v of_o all_o bishopriques_n and_o dignity_n which_o be_v confer_v by_o election_n void_v and_o disannul_v the_o decree_n former_o make_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n with_o so_o much_o care_n and_o commodity_n that_o so_o they_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n fill_v their_o own_o budget_n the_o better_a and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o it_o may_v be_v peradventure_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n take_v the_o creation_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o disposal_n of_o the_o high_a dignity_n in_o the_o church_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n quite_o abolish_n all_o election_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o their_o providence_n the_o church_n may_v be_v the_o
and_o other_o like_a knack_n their_o money_n for_o vacancy_n which_o be_v levy_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a canon_n and_o decree_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o sacred_a counsel_n that_o what_o be_v so_o get_v may_v be_v employ_v in_o purchase_v of_o earldom_n and_o lordship_n to_o bestow_v upon_o people_n of_o mean_a condition_n and_o to_o prefer_v they_o without_o any_o precedent_a merit_n without_o any_o service_n or_o use_v which_o they_o can_v do_v to_o the_o church_n or_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n 18_o francis_n guicciardine_n in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o his_o history_n of_o italy_n in_o the_o discourse_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v be_v expunge_v by_o some_o t●ent_n cozener_n among_o other_o vice_n and_o abuse_n which_o he_o observe_v in_o the_o popedom_n thi●_n be_v one_o a_o earnest_n and_o everlasting_a desire_n of_o prefer_v their_o child_n their_o nephew_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o kindred_n and_o ally_n po●●s_n not_o only_o to_o inestimable_a riches_n but_o also_o to_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n and_o a_o little_a after_o to_o exalt_v their_o kindred_n and_o rai●e_v they_o from_o a_o private_a state_n to_o principality_n they_o have_v of_o late_a year_n be_v the_o author_n of_o war_n and_o the_o firebrand_n of_o the_o late_a combustion_n in_o italy_n we_o hear_v before_o what_o the_o same_o author_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o indulgence_n money_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o how_o it_o be_v bestow_v to_o the_o use_n and_o petty_a pleasure_n of_o his_o sister_n magdalen_n 19_o we_o will_v conclude_v this_o discourse_n with_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o same_o author_n which_o will_v bring_v we_o upon_o another_o italy_n their_o study_n and_o business_n be_v not_o only_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n holiness_n of_o life_n nor_o the_o propagation_n of_o religion_n and_o charity_n towards_o god_n and_o men●_n but_o arm_n and_o war_n against_o christian_n handle_v sacred_a thing_n with_o bloody_a thought_n and_o hand_n but_o a_o infinite_a desire_n of_o money_n new_a law_n new_a trick_n new_a invention_n to_o ●nhanse_v their_o rent_n from_o all_o part_n for_o which_o end_n they_o shoot_v out_o their_o celestial_a arrow_n they_o most_o impudent_o practice_v a_o trade_n and_o traffic_v of_o all_o thing_n sacred_a and_o profane_a whereby_o their_o riches_n be_v augment_v to_o a_o excessive_a greatness_n and_o scatter_v over_o all_o their_o court_n have_v bring_v forth_o pride_n luxury_n debauch_a manner_n and_o most_o abominable_a pleasure_n see_v here_o the_o say_n of_o a_o ringleader_n and_o conductor_n of_o the_o pope_n army_n of_o one_o who_o be_v leo_n the_o ten_o favourite_n 20_o let_v we_o pa●se_v a_o while_n upon_o this_o luxury_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o and_o set_v down_o the_o complaint_n which_o divers_a other_o have_v make_v against_o it_o first_o that_o which_o s._n bernard_n say_v to_o eugenius_n the_o 3_o papam_fw-la i_o do_v not_o spare_v you_o here_o say_v he_o that_o god_n may_v spare_v you_o hereafter_o show_v yourself_o a_o shepherd_n towards_o this_o people_n or_o else_o confess_v that_o you_o be_v not_o so_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o you_o be_v leas●_n you_o shall_v deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v his_o successor_n in_o who_o see_v you_o sit_v that_o peter_n who_o for_o aught_o that_o we_o know_v never_o go_v adorn_v with_o precious_a stone_n attire_v in_o silk_n and_o clothe_v in_o gold_n mount_v upon_o a_o white_a palfrey_n surround_v with_o a_o guard_n attend_v with_o a_o great_a many_o lackey_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o he_o have_v the_o power_n without_o all_o these_o to_o accomplish_v that_o save_a commandment_n if_o thou_o love_v me●_n feed_v my_o sheep_n 21_o john_n sarisbury_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n who_o live_v about_o 1180_o say_v 24._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v burdensome_a and_o insupportable_a to_o all_o man_n 3._o ●e_n build_v palace_n out_o of_o the_o ruine●_n of_o church_n he_o go_v accoutre_v not_o only_o in_o purple_a but_o in_o gold_n 22_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n 11._o let_v they_o tell_v i_o i_o pray_v they_o with_o what_o conscience_n according_a to_o christian_a religion_n they_o spend_v the_o good_n of_o the_o poor_a live_v after_o a_o worldly_a fashion_n upon_o so_o many_o unnecessary_n in_o horse_n servant_n banquet_n and_o other_o vanity_n and_o delicate_n both_o secret_a and_o public_a they_o i_o say_v who_o for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n aught_o to_o be_v content_a with_o food_n and_o raiment_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n appointment_n in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n chap._n x._o of_o the_o injust_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n flatterer_n 1_o one_o of_o the_o main_a point_n touch_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o unbridled_a and_o redoubt_a power_n which_o he_o challenge_v both_o in_o spiritual_n and_o temporal_n consider_v that_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v a_o absolute_a and_o sovereign_a power_n over_o both_o it_o be_v fit_v i_o think_v to_o set_v bound_n to_o the_o plenitude_n of_o that_o power_n which_o have_v neither_o bank_n nor_o bottom_n to_o he_o that_o extend_v his_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o world_n even_o as_o low_o as_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n as_o high_a as_o heaven_n which_o take_v hold_v of_o great_a and_o small_a clerk_n and_o laique_n thing_n sacred_a and_o profane_a which_o have_v set_v all_o the_o church_n yea_o all_o christendom_n by_o the_o ear_n together_o which_o be_v the_o source_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o our_o misery_n and_o against_o which_o there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o complaint_n exhibit_v upon_o this_o occasion_n 1551._o 2_o paul_n the_o three_o delegate_n have_v a_o touch_n at_o this_o point_n in_o their_o reformation●_n in_o former_a time_n say_v they_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o have_v access_n to_o the_o audience_n of_o certain_a pope_n by_o reason_n of_o certain_a flatterer_n which_o magnify_v and_o extend_v their_o power_n too_o much_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o be_v lord_n paramount_n of_o all_o and_o may_v do_v any_o thing_n what_o they_o list_v from_o this_o spring_n have_v so_o many_o misery_n in_o great_a flood_n overflow_v the_o church_n that_o she_o be_v now_o quite_o overbear_v and_o drown_v see_v here_o what_o they_o say_v who_o be_v conjure_v by_o the_o pope_n upon_o oath_n and_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o tell_v he_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o that_o require_v reformation_n we_o have_v former_o observe_v a_o place_n in_o zabarel_n of_o the_o like_a strain_n with_o this_o 12._o 3_o master_n john_n gerson_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la have_v the_o very_a same_o on_o the_o other_o side_n say_v he_o upstart_n cunning_a and_o gloze_a flattery_n whisper_v the_o clergy_n but_o especial_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o care_n o_o how_o great_a be_v the_o height_n of_o your_o ecclesiastical_a power_n o_o sacred_a clergy_n all_o secular_a authority_n be_v but_o a_o toy_n in_o comparison_n of_o thou_o see_v that_o as_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o christ_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o christ_n have_v bequeath_v all_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n so_o that_o constantine_n give_v nothing_o to_o pope_n sylvester_n which_o be_v not_o original_o his_o own_o but_o only_o restore_v unto_o he_o what_o he_o injust_o detain_v from_o he_o again_o as_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o be_v of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a imperial_a or_o regal_a which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n upon_o who_o thigh_n god_n have_v write_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n so_o as_o to_o dispute_v his_o power_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrilege_n to_o who_o no_o man_n may_v say_v why_o do_v you_o so_o although_o he_o shall_v exchange_v purloin_v of_o sell_v all_o the_o temporal_n the_o good_n land_n and_o lordship_n of_o the_o church_n let_v i_o be_v a_o liar_n if_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o write_v by_o such_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v wise_a man_n in_o their_o eye_n and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v believe_v also_o by_o some_o pope_n 25._o 4_o so_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n in_o many_o sundry_a place_n of_o his_o defensor_fw-la pacis_fw-la particular_o in_o the_o second_o part_n and_o twenty_o five_o chapter_n they_o have_v take_v up_o a_o title_n say_v he_o which_o they_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o and_o which_o they_o will_v make_v a_o instrument_n of_o this_o wickedness_n namely_o the_o plenitude_n or_o fullness_n of_o power_n which_o they_o say_v be_v give_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o that_o apostle_n successor_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o accurse_a title_n powe●_n and_o their_o sophistical_a manner_n of_o discourse_n they_o use_v a_o certain_a captious_a kind_n
the_o pope_n stand_v to_o have_v superiority_n over_o the_o emperor_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o speak_v and_o odious_a to_o hear_v for_o natural_o ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n not_o only_o lay_v man_n but_o the_o clergy_n also_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o empire_n 20_o speak_v in_o another_o place_n of_o a_o woman_n jointure_n alien_v by_o the_o husband_n vobis●_n this_o he_o say_v can_v be_v recover_v by_o the_o wife_n when_o she_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o in_o this_o case_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o civil_a the_o canon_n law_n say_v he_o be_v observe_v even_o in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o empire_n here_o take_v notice_n how_o the_o pope●_n usurp_v upon_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o this_o as_o he_o do_v also_o in_o divers_a other_o thing_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o inexperince_n of_o the_o emperor_n sword_n 21_o theodorick_n de_fw-fr nihem_n in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la speak_v his_o mind_n very_o roundly_o exclaim_v against_o those_o who_o put_v two_o sword_n into_o the_o pope_n hand_n 7._o now_o that_o the_o empire_n say_v he_o depend_v principal_o and_o immediate_o upon_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v manifest_a by_o evident_a reason_n it_o be_v further_a confirm_v by_o that_o decree_n where_o the_o pope_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n my_o church_n over_o which_o our_o god_n have_v ordain_v my_o priesthood_n while_o you_o govern_v humane_a affair_n &c_n &c_n it_o be_v prove_v also_o by_o divers_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o law_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o talk_v sorry_o and_o soothing_o who_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n have_v two_o sword_n the_o spiritual_a and_o the_o temporal_a whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o sheath_n for_o if_o both_o the_o sword_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n power_n the_o emperor_n or_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n shall_v have_v that_o title_n false_o and_o vain_o give_v unto_o he_o but_o these_o flatterer_n by_o such_o like_a word_n and_o write_n breed_v a_o great_a error_n over_o all_o christendom_n and_o raise_v as_o it_o be_v a_o continual_a emulation_n or_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o imperial_a authority_n be_v trample_v under_o foot_n and_o his_o power_n call_v in_o question_n to_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o whole_a commonwealth_n 22_o antonius_n de_fw-fr rosellis_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la &_o papae_fw-la say_v 9_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a and_o heretical_a opinion_n that_o the_o whole_a disposal_n of_o temporal_a thing_n i●_n or_o aught_o to_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n power_n or_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n he_o say_v further_a he_o omittes_fw-la that_o and_o laugh_v at_o it_o which_o some_o use_n for_o a_o shift_n that_o the_o dominion_n over_o temporal_a thing_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n habitual_o and_o in_o power_n though_o he_o do_v not_o immediate_o actuate_v it_o but_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o as_o they_o say_v receive_v the_o empire_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o administration_n thereof_o so_o as_o he_o depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n for_o upon_o who_o the_o exercise_n be_v bestow_v to_o he_o also_o be_v the_o habit_n give_v much_o more_o see_v that_o virtue_n consist_v in_o the_o act_n not_o in_o the_o habit_n and_o in_o another_o place_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o elect_v and_o crown_v the_o emperor_n 11._o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o high_a priestship_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o christ_n but_o he_o perform_v the_o coronation_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o commission_n grant_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o empire_n which_o may_v also_o be_v revoke_v upon_o occasion_n 179_o 23_o albert_n krant_v a_o dutch_a historian_n and_o divine_a who_o live_v a_o little_a before_o these_o late_a broil_n about_o religion_n speak_v so_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o king_n which_o the_o pope_n challenge_v as_o that_o he_o plain_o show_v that_o he_o dislike_v it_o for_o tell_v a_o story_n of_o a_o duke_n of_o cracovia_n who_o pope_n john_n the_o 22_o create_a king_n of_o poland_n then_o say_v he_o the_o pope_n be_v come_v to_o that_o majesty_n which_o secular_a prince_n call_v presumption_n that_o they_o create_v king_n 24_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o protestation_n make_v by_o king_n charles_n ann_n 1563_o upon_o the_o monitory_a of_o pope_n pius_n the_o 4_o set_v out_o against_o the_o queen_n of_o navarre_n we_o find_v this_o clause_n worthy_a our_o observation_n as_o for_o good_n the_o king_n think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n will_v intermeddle_v with_o the_o confiscation_n of_o good_n within_o his_o kingdom_n or_o with_o the_o diminution_n or_o dispose_n of_o they_o as_o the_o say_a monitory_n affirm_v contrary_a to_o all_o the_o constitution_n and_o canon_n of_o counsel_n that_o be_v ever_o yet_o see_v upon_o record_n in_o the_o book_n of_o his_o predecessor_n 25_o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o masculine_a &_o generous_a than_o the_o remonstrance_n of_o that_o noble_a parliament_n of_o paris_n exhibit_v to_o the_o decease_a king_n against_o the_o bull_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n ann_n 1585._o whereby_o he_o excommunicate_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n our_o sovereign_n that_o now_o be_v and_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n deprive_v they_o of_o their_o good_n and_o land_n as_o for_o the_o holy_a bull_n the_o court_n do_v find_v it_o to_o be_v of_o a_o new_a stile_n and_o so_o far_o from_o the_o modesty_n of_o the_o former_a pope_n that_o it_o have_v no_o affinity_n with_o the_o way_n of_o a_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o do_v not_o find_v in_o our_o record_n nor_o in_o all_o antiquity_n that_o the_o prince_n in_o france_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o pope_n nor_o that_o the_o subject_n sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o the_o prince_n religion_n allegiance_n the_o court_n can_v take_v it_o into_o consideration_n till_o the_o pope_n do_v first_o show_v some_o right_n which_o he_o pretend_v for_o transfer_v of_o kingdom_n ordain_v and_o establish_v by_o god_n before_o ever_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n come_v into_o the_o world_n till_o he_o have_v show_v we_o upon_o what_o title_n he_o meddle_v with_o the_o successor_n of_o a_o prince_n full_a of_o youth_n and_o strength_n and_o who_o natural_o ought_v to_o have_v his_o heir_n of_o his_o own_o body_n he_o must_v inform_v we_o with_o what_o colour_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n he_o bestow_v that_o which_o be_v none_o of_o his_o own_o he_o take_v from_o another_o that_o which_o belong_v unto_o he_o he_o put_v vassal_n and_o subject_n in_o rebellion_n against_o their_o lord_n and_o sovereign_n and_o reverse_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o justice_n and_o civil_a government_n 26_o as_o for_o the_o absolve_a of_o subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o their_o lord_n and_o prince_n the_o last_o word_n of_o ralph_n duke_n of_o suevia_n who_o gregory_n the_o 7_o have_v cause_v to_o rise_v up_o against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o lose_v the_o tie_n of_o that_o oath_n which_o bind_v he_o to_o his_o prince_n and_o create_v he_o emperor_n be_v sufficient_a proof_n to_o any_o man_n that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a unlawful_a act_n 65_o you_o see_v say_v he_o to_o his_o familiar_n how_o my_o right_a hand_n be_v sore_o of_o a_o hurt_n it_o be_v the_o hand_n whereby_o i_o swear_v to_o henry_n my_o lord_n and_o master_n that_o i_o will_v never_o annoy_v he_o that_o i_o will_v never_o lay_v in_o ambush_n to_o intercept_v his_o glory_n but_o the_o pope_n command_n bring_v i_o to_o this_o to_o break_v my_o oath_n and_o usurp_v a_o honour_n which_o be_v not_o due_a unto_o i_o you_o see_v what_o end_n it_o be_v come_v to_o i_o have_v receive_v this_o mortal_a wound_n upon_o this_o hand_n which_o break_v the_o oath_n let_v they_o then_o who_o have_v incite_v we_o so_o to_o do_v consider_v in_o what_o manner_n they_o urge_v we_o for_o fear_v that_o we_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o the_o downfall_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n 27_o sigebert_n 101●6_n speak_v of_o the_o sam●_n henry_n and_o of_o pope_n vrbane_n the_o second_o who_o have_v also_o excommunicate_v he_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o empire_n and_o absolve_v his_o subject_n of_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n i_o dare_v say_v say_v he_o by_o the_o favour_n and_o good_a leave_n of_o all_o honest_a man_n that_o that_o new_a doctrine_n that_o i_o call_v it_o not_o heresy_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o his_o priest_n
appeal_n to_o a_o future_a council_n touch_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n make_v by_o leo_n the_o ten_o in_o a_o conventicle_n assemble_v by_o he_o at_o the_o lateran_n and_o also_o touch_v the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n wherein_o that_o council_n be_v confirm_v but_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o hear_v the_o true_o pious_a word_n of_o that_o generous_a university_n pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o in_o a_o certain_a assembly_n hold_v at_o rome_n ex●●●endarum_fw-la we_o know_v not_o how_o but_o sure_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o where_o he_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v consult_v upon_o or_o determine_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n &_o the_o sacred_a counsel_n have_v resolve_v we_o know_v not_o upon_o what_o advice_n to_o abrogate_v the_o say_v so_o useful_a decree_n transgress_v herein_o against_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o authority_n of_o sacred_a general_n counsel_n and_o therefore_o have_v condemn_v the_o holy_a council_n of_o basil_n pope_n make_v certain_a other_o decree_n at_o his_o pleasure_n under_o correction_n be_v it_o speak_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o of_o dauphin_n and_o to_o the_o detriment_n of_o the_o subject_n of_o our_o most_o illustrious_a king_n of_o france_n and_o afterward_o have_v make_v such_o novel_a decree_n he_o have_v constrain_v our_o most_o renown_a king_n francis_n by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o some_o body_n or_o other_o to_o give_v his_o consent_n unto_o they_o while_o he_o be_v in_o italy_n employ_v there_o in_o business_n of_o war_n wherewith_o we_o the_o rectour_n and_o university_n do_v find_v ourselves_o grieve_v wrong_a and_o oppress_v and_o do_v provoke_v and_o appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n ill-advised_n as_o concern_v the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o ordinance_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a council_n of_o basil_n and_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n thereunto_o adhere_v to_o a_o future_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o some_o safe_a and_o free_a place_n etc._n etc._n give_v at_o paris_n in_o our_o general_a congregation_n solemn_o hold_v at_o saint_n bernard_n may_n the_o 27._o 1517._o a_o german_a monk_n speak_v of_o this_o appeal●_n say_v not_o without_o cause_n do_v the_o university_n of_o paris_n become_v appellant_n to_o a_o general_n council_n against_o pope_n leo_n for_o the_o good_a and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o especial_o for_o that_o the_o same_o pope_n leo_n have_v undertake_v to_o condemn_v and_o disannul_v the_o council_n of_o basil_n in_o a_o certain_a assembly_n or_o conventicle_n of_o cardinal_n hold_v a●_n rome_n 9_o some_o of_o the_o commentator_n among_o the_o canonist_n have_v say_v in_o express_a term_n ●_o that_o a_o appeal_n may_v lie_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o a_o council_n among_o who_o be_v ludovicus_n romanus_n and_o abbas_n siculus_n in_o his_o allegation_n such_o appeal_v to_o a_o future_a council_n be_v not_o to_o be_v strange_v at_o for_o in_o france_n they_o go_v further_o than_o so_o insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v to_o the_o parliament_n from_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o pope_n abusive_a bull_n 10_o but_o bellarmine_n urge_v some_o example_n to_o the_o contrary_a against_o we_o to_o wit_n of_o appeal_n make_v from_o counsel_n to_o pope_n the_o first_o be_v of_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o say_v he_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n appeal_v to_o pope_n julius_n and_o be_v by_o he_o restore_v to_o their_o see_v again_o this_o he_o take_v out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o so●●●en_n which_o make_v against_o he_o first_o he_o do_v not_o any_o way_n speak_v of_o appeal_n ●●om_o the_o council_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o that_o be_v not_o then_o in_o use_n he_o say_v indeed_o that_o athanasius_n and_o some_o other_o bishop_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o see_v and_o pers●cucuted_v by_o the_o arrian_n bishop_n which_o be_v in_o the_o east_n flee_v to_o rome_n as_o to_o a_o haven_n of_o refuge_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v hear_v their_o confession_n conformable_a to_o the_o nicene_n creed_n receive_v they_o into_o communion_n restore_v they_o to_o their_o church_n and_o write_v to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n who_o he_o rebuke_v for_o depose_v they_o but_o we_o must_v always_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v arrian_n and_o persecuter_n and_o that_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o between_o par●ie_n and_o party_n if_o bellarmine_n deny_v it_o or_o if_o he_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v look_v here_o only_o to_o the_o form_n of_o proceed_v which_o be_v ordinary_a we_o will_v take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n and_o present_o oppose_v unto_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o own_o author_n who_o say_v that_o these_o bishop_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o pope_n letter_n frame_v he_o a_o answer_n full_a of_o ironye_n and_o threat_n that_o they_o confess_v as_o he_o say_v supra_fw-la that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o principal_a as_o that_o which_o be_v the_o prime_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o metropolitan_a for_o piety_n ever_o since_o the_o beginning_n howbeit_o tho●●_n which_o plant_v christian_n religion_n there_o come_v first_o out_o of_o the_o east_n but_o they_o be_v displease_v that_o he_o shall_v think_v they_o be_v inferior_a to_o himself_o because_o his_o church_n be_v of_o a_o great_a lustre_n though_o they_o excel_v he_o in_o virtue_n and_o sanctity_n of_o life_n they_o object_v also_o against_o he_o as_o a_o crime_n that_o he_o have_v communicate_v with_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o see_v their_o sentence_n make_v invalid_a by_o he_o as_o if_o it_o be_v by_o a_o council_n so_o that_o what_o he_o do_v be_v by_o way_n of_o abuse_n and_o usurpation_n and_o not_o by_o right_a 11_o the_o second_o example_n be_v of_o that_o appeal_n which_o he_o say_v be_v make_v to_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o answer_v from_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n by_o flavian_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o quars_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v it_o appear_v th●●_n t●is_n be_v not_o so_o for_o first_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o act_n that_o the_o appeal_n be_v put_v in_o ●imply_o by_o the_o word_n appello_n without_o mention_v whither_o chalc._n second_o the_o appellant_n present_v a_o petition_n to_o the_o emperor_n tend_v to_o this_o effect●●hat_o they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o refer_v the_o cause_n unto_o a_o council_n thirdly●_o the_o council_n pass_v the_o judgement_n upon_o the_o case_n of_o the_o appeal_v and_o four_a the_o pope_n himself_o be_v condemn_v by_o that_o synod_n he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o plaintiff_n against_o dioscorus_n the_o head_n of_o it_o whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v to_o his_o legate_n by_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon●_n imperat_fw-la that_o they_o be_v accuser_n can_v not_o be_v judge_n pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o testify_v that_o dioscor●●_n be_v not_o so_o much_o condemn_v for_o his_o heresy_n as_o for_o dare_v to_o pass_v sentence_n against_o the_o pope_n to_o what_o purpose_n then_o have_v it_o be_v to_o appeal_v to_o he_o see_v he_o himself_o be_v condemn_v and_o be_v a_o plaintiff_n 12_o the_o three_o example_n be_v of_o a_o appeal_n make_v to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o by_o john_n chrysostome_n who_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n as_o it_o be_v testify_v by_o pope_n gelasius_n but_o he_o make_v we_o sometime_o believe_v that_o they_o as_o other_o man_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o let_v we_o have_v the_o best_a in_o the_o pack_n when_o their_o own_o greatness_n be_v in_o question_n 26._o sozomen_n be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v in_o this_o point_n than_o he_o who_o relate_v the_o fact_n say_v not_o a_o word_n that_o come_v near_o to_o any_o such_o appeal_v only_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o chrysostome_n be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n not_o the_o general_n but_o another_o that_o pope_n innocent_n have_v notice_n of_o the_o fact_n condemn_v it_o that_o be_v be_v displease_v at_o it_o and_o disallow_v of_o it_o that_o which_o follow_v confirm_v this_o exposition_n that_o he_o take_v pain_n to_o get_v a_o general_n council_n call_v that_o he_o write_v some_o consolatorie_a letter_n to_o chrysostome_n and_o the_o clergy_n of_o constantinople_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v but_o what_o remedy_n can_v we_o apply_v to_o it_o for_o the_o present_a there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o synodical_a judgement_n so_o i_o have_v say_v a_o long_a time_n that_o we_o must_v assemble_v one_o and_o according_o he_o send_v five_o bishop_n and_o two_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o emperor_n h●norius_n and_o arcadius_n to_o entreat_v a_o synod_n of_o
can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n above_o the_o law_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o plenitude_n of_o power_n this_o ●ext_n will_v be_v always_o understand_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o practitioner_n who_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v above_o the_o law_n beside_o the_o law_n and_o against_o the_o law_n that_o he_o have_v sovereign_a power_n in_o all_o and_o above_o all_o 2_o but_o though_o he_o shall_v challenge_v no_o more_o but_o the_o dispense_n with_o humane_a law_n in_o all_o those_o case_n specify_v by_o gratian_n ●deo_fw-la it_o be_v no_o light_a matter_n our_o law_n will_v henceforth_o scarce_o serve_v our_o turn_n neither_o the_o decree_n nor_o the_o canon_n for_o according_a to_o his_o opinion_n the_o pope_n be_v no_o way_n subject_n to_o they_o but_o may_v dispense_v with_o they_o and_o make_v new_a law_n our_o glossatour_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n avow_v by_o the_o rota_n of_o rome_n go_v far_o further_o as_o thate_v proposuit_fw-la the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n against_o the_o old_a testament_n against_o the_o four_o evangelist_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n when_o they_o come_v so_o far_o in_o this_o i_o leave_v you_o to_o imagine_v what_o they_o will_v do_v in_o the_o rest_n at_o this_o day_n especial_o when_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v decide_v it_o will_v not_o need_v to_o put_v in_o that_o exception_n of_o the_o gloss_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v against_o the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o be_v above_o it_o and_o have_v full_a sovereignty_n when_o he_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o it_o who_o will_v tell_v he_o you_o be_v to_o blame_v especial_o consider_v our_o sophister_n maintain_v now_o adays_o that_o all_o he_o do_v be_v well_o do_v and_o that_o he_o can_v err_v in_o that_o regard_n pope_n be_v not_o content_a to_o dispense_v only_o in_o their_o book_n but_o they_o do_v it_o far_o better_a in_o their_o practice_n and_o that_o always_o to_o their_o own_o advantage_n for_o these_o dispensation_n aim_v at_o two_o thing_n their_o profit_n and_o their_o greatness_n germany_n will_v tell_v we_o news_n of_o they_o as_o for_o the_o first_o i_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o protestant_n but_o the_o catholic_n assemble_v ●t_a a_o imperial_a diet_n at_o noremberg_n the_o year_n 1522_o when_o they_o say_v 3_o many_o thing_n be_v forbid_v by_o humane_a constitution_n and_o many_o thing_n also_o be_v command_v which_o be_v neither_o command_v nor_o prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n expetendarum_fw-la such_o be_v divers_a impediment_n of_o marriage_n by_o reason_n of_o affinity_n common_a honesty_n spiritual_a and_o legal_a kindred's_n and_o consanguinity_n in_o many_o divers_a degree_n beside_o the_o use_n of_o some_o meat_n be_v forbid_v which_o yet_o god_n create_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o man_n these_o and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a humane_a constitution_n bind_v man_n so_o long_o till_o they_o can_v by_o their_o money_n purchase_v a_o dispensation_n from_o such_o law_n of_o those_o that_o make_v they_o dispensation_n so_o money_n make_v that_o lawful_a to_o the_o rich_a which_o the_o poor_a can_v compass●_n gratis_o and_o by_o such_o unlawful_a band_n of_o humane_a constitution_n there_o be_v not_o only_a a●_n huge_a mass_n of_o money_n drain_v out_o of_o germany_n and_o transport_v beyond_o the_o alpes●_n but_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o iniquity_n be_v raise_v among_o christian_n themselves_o many_o offence_n and_o quarrel_n when_o the_o poor_a perceive_v themselves_o catch_v in_o these_o net_n fo●_n no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o they_o want_v the_o thorn_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o so_o be_v riche●●alled●_n there_o this_o complaint_n be_v present_v to_o pope_n adrian_n the_o 6_o when_o he_o talk_v of_o call_v that_o general_n conncell_n which_o be_v afterward_o hold_v at_o trent_n 4_o the_o same_o nation_n of_o germany_n have_v draw_v up_o a_o summarie_n of_o other_o grievance_n some_o year_n before_o and_o present_v they_o to_o the_o emperor_n maximilian_n the_o first_o be_v this_o 167.6_o as_o for_o the_o observance_n of_o bull_n compact_n privilege_n and_o letter_n grant_v by_o their_o predecessor_n without_o any_o limitation_n the_o late_a pope_n think_v they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o transgress_v they_o by_o frequent_a dispensation_n suspension_n and_o repeal_v upon_o any_o man_n entreaty_n yea_o even_a o●_n some_o base_a fellow_n 5_o a_o certain_a archbishop_n of_o germany_n legat_n for_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n ask_v pope_n zacharie_n what_o he_o shall_v do_v about_o a_o dispensation_n which_o a_o german_a assure_v he_o he_o have_v get_v of_o pope_n gregory_n his_o predecessor_n francica●_n to_o marry_v a_o woman_n that_o have_v first_o be_v marry_v to_o his_o uncle_n and_o afterward_o to_o a_o cousin_n of_o he_o from_o who_o she_o be_v divorce_v and_o who_o be_v yet_o alive_a beside_o she_o be_v his_o kinswoman_n in_o the_o three_o degree_n and_o have_v be_v a_o nun._n we_o know_v not_o what_o answer_n he_o have_v nor_o do_v we_o here_o consider_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o injustness_n of_o the_o dispensation_n 6_o saint_n bernard_n who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 1150_o write_v to_o eugenius_n the_o three_o complain_v bitter_o of_o these_o dispensation_n what_o you_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o do_v you_o forbid_v i_o to_o dispense_v pap._n no_o say_v he_o but_o only_a to_o dissipate_v i_o be_o not_o so_o ignorant_a but_o i_o know_v you_o be_v place_v there_o to_o be_v a_o dispenser_n but_o to_o edification_n not_o to_o destruction_n 7_o the_o state_n of_o england_n be_v all_o assemble_v together_o in_o corpse_n in_o the_o year_n 1246_o under_o henry_n the_o three_o put_v up_o divers_a grievance_n against_o the_o pope_n in_o a_o bill_n of_o complaint_n draw_v by_o they_o which_o we_o read_v entire_a in_o the_o history_n of_o a_o english_a monk_n 677●_n among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o england_n be_v further_o aggrieve_v by_o the_o frequent_a come_n of_o that_o infamous_a nuncio_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la whereby_o the_o religion_n of_o oath_n the_o ancient_a custom_n the_o validity_n of_o write_n the_o authority_n of_o grant_n the_o statute_n law_n &_o privilege_n be_v weaken_v and_o disannul_v insomuch_o that_o infinite_a number_n of_o englishman_n be_v grieve_v and_o afflict_v thereby_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o carry_v himself_o so_o legal_o and_o moderate_o towards_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n in_o revoke_v the_o plenitude_n of_o his_o power_n as_o he_o promise_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o the_o proctor_n at_o rome_n 8_o the_o bishop_n of_o m●nda_n in_o gevaudan_n be_v command_v by_o clement_n the_o five_o to_o go_v to_o the_o general_n council_n hold_v at_o vienna_n in_o the_o time_n of_o philip_n the_o fair_a part_n make_v some_o pretty_a note_n touch_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n where_o speak_v of_o dispensation_n he_o say_v that_o the_o very_a nerve_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o decree_n be_v break_v by_o the_o dispensation_n which_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o be_v against_o the_o common_a good_a and_o cite_v the_o authority_n of_o saint_n jerom_n write_v to_o rusticus_n bishop_n of_o narbon_n he_o say_v since_o avarice_n be_v increase_v in_o church_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o law_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o priest_n and_o see_v from_o the_o prophet_n we_o read_v also_o in_o the_o decree_n say_v he_o that_o crassus_n be_v turn_v into_o gold_n and_o that_o he_o drink_v gold_n he_o give_v we_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o dispensation_n according_a to_o the_o lawyer_n which_o he_o say_v be_v a_o provident_a relaxation_n of_o the_o general_a law_n countervail_v by_o commodity_n or_o necessity_n that_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o use_v it_o be_v not_o a_o dispensation_n but_o a_o dissipation_n that_o the_o question_n be_v now_o about_o the_o stain_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n that_o those_o who_o dispense_v upon_o unnecessary_a cause_n err_v last_o for_o matter_n of_o dispensation_n he_o will_v have_v that_o observe_v which_o pope_n leo_n say_v ob●●●●e●_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v alter_v upon_o any_o occasion_n other_o which_o may_v be_v temper_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n or_o consideration_n of_o man_n age_n but_o always_o with_o this_o resolution_n when_o there_o be_v any_o doubt_n or_o obscurity_n to_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n nor_o repugnant_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o holy_a father_n 14._o 9_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o christendom_n that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n demand_v the_o like_a reformation_n 40._o for_o among_o other_o article_n of_o
be_v we_o suppose_v you_o know_v very_o well_o how_o the_o partisan_n of_o donatus_n 162._o of_o their_o own_o proper_a motion_n accuse_v cecilian_a than_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n before_o that_o ancient_a emperor_n constantine_n and_o he_o afterward_o add_v that_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o episcopal_a cause_n after_o he_o have_v the_o hear_n of_o it_o 7_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n have_v judge_v of_o the_o great_a impiety_n of_o actius_n 27._o send_v he_o present_o into_o banishment_n and_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v carry_v un●o_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o phrygia_n say_v theodoret._n the_o form_n of_o proceeding_n be_v set_v down_o by_o sozomen_n a_o little_a more_o at_o large_a from_o whence_o we_o learn_v how_o honoratus_n governor_n of_o constantinople_n be_v first_o elect_v and_o depute_v to_o proceed_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o deacon_n and_o how_o the_o emperor_n himself_o take_v it_o afterward_o into_o his_o own_o hand_n 22._o while_o these_o twenty_o bishop_n send_v from_o both_o counsel_n be_v at_o constantinople_n together_o with_o some_o other_o who_o meet_v there_o occasional_o power_n be_v first_o give_v to_o honoratus_n who_o the_o emperor_n have_v appoint_v governor_n of_o constantinople_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o aetius_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o counselor_n of_o the_o great_a counsel_n but_o constantius_n afterward_o have_v take_v the_o same_o cause_n into_o his_o cognizance_n together_o with_o the_o magistrate_n aetius_n be_v find_v to_o think_v amiss_o of_o the_o faith_n insomuch_o that_o both_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v great_o offend_v with_o his_o word_n full_a of_o blasphemy_n 8_o saint_n augustine_n entreat_v apringius_fw-la proconsull_n of_o africa_n and_o marcellinus_n the_o tribune_n 160._o to_o condemn_v certain_a clerk_n partisan_n of_o donatus_n to_o a_o more_o gentle_a punishment_n than_o they_o have_v deserve_v acknowledge_v they_o for_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n he_o speak_v thus_o unto_o the_o proconsul_n intercede_v for_o his_o enemy_n why_o will_v you_o not_o mitigate_v your_o sentence_n see_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o judge_n so_o to_o do_v even_o in_o other_o cause_n which_o do_v not_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o when_o their_o enemy_n be_v too_o mild_o proceed_v against_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o appeal_v a_o minori_fw-la we_o love_v our_o enemy_n so_o well_o that_o if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o your_o christian_a obedience_n we_o will_v appeal_v from_o the_o severity_n of_o your_o sentence_n this_o be_v speak_v by_o a_o man_n which_o approve_v their_o jurisdiction_n otherwise_o he_o will_v have_v say_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o controversy_n 9_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n grant_v a_o commission_n to_o sapor_n one_o of_o his_o chief_a officer_n to_o eject_v the_o arrian_n bishop_n out_o of_o their_o church_n 5._o and_o replace_v the_o orthodox_n in_o they_o according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o he_o have_v make_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o commission_n sapor_n judge_v of_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v betwixt_o paulinus_n apollinaris_n and_o meletius_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n depose_v the_o o●e_n and_o establish_v the_o other_o sapor_n say_v theodoret_n be_v appoint_v judge_n of_o those_o matter_n which_o be_v urge_v on_o either_o side_n adjudge_v the_o church_n unto_o great_a meletius_n 3_o paulinus_n remain_v bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o those_o sheep_n who_o he_o have_v former_o separate_v from_o the_o rest_n and_o apollinaris_n be_v reject_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n begin_v open_o to_o publish_v that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v late_o invent_v and_o declare_v himself_o the_o head_n of_o that_o sect_n 10_o maximus_n the_o emperor_n of_o the_o gaul_n receive_v the_o appeal_n which_o be_v put_v in_o by_o priscillian_n bishop_n of_o spain_n from_o the_o council_n of_o bordeaux_n 2._o to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o judgement_n of_o he_o he_o depute_v euodius_n one_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o his_o province_n who_o after_o he_o have_v hear_v priscillian_n in_o two_o judgement_n he_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o crime_n be_v by_o he_o pronounce_v guilty_a and_o send_v to_o prison_n again_o till_o such_o time_n as_o he_o have_v certify_v the_o prince_n of_o he_o the_o process_n be_v relate_v at_o court_n the_o emperor_n be_v aminded_a that_o priscillian_n and_o his_o complice_n shall_v be_v condemn_v to_o death_n emperor_n 11_o sometime_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o or_o their_o officer_n proceed_v to_o the_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n of_o clergyman_n with_o counsel_n call_v for_o this_o purpose_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n so_o elpidius_n and_o eulogius_n magistrate_n and_o officer_n be_v command_v by_o theodosius_n to_o assist_v at_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n where_o the_o condemnation_n of_o eutiches_n be_v controvert_v their_o commission_n run_v thus_o to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o judgement_n and_o to_o take_v order_n that_o a_o speedy_a and_o pertinent_a proof_n be_v make_v by_o the_o synod_n and_o send_v to_o the_o emperor_n elpidium_fw-la those_o who_o have_v be_v eutiches_n his_o judge_n before_o be_v now_o present_a but_o not_o judge_n 137._o 12_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n of_o a_o petition_n put_v up_o by_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o dorylea_n direct_v to_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n and_o martian_a where_o he_o entreat_v they_o that_o they_o will_v grant_v the_o cognizance_n of_o the_o injury_n which_o have_v be_v do_v unto_o he_o by_o dioscorus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n unto_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o the_o death_n of_o flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n whereof_o the_o same_o dioscorus_n be_v accuse_v at_o the_o synod_n of_o chalcedon_n 135._o to_o the_o intent_n that_o it_o may_v hear_v we_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n and_o also_o dioscorus_n and_o report_n unto_o your_o piety_n all_o that_o pass_v that_o you_o may_v do_v in_o it_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v your_o clemency_n we_o read_v there_o also_o another_o petition_n of_o savinian_a bishop_n of_o lesina_n 315._o exhibit_v unto_o the_o same_o emperor_n whereby_o they_o be_v entreat_v to_o command_v that_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v examine_v in_o their_o presence_n it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o officer_n and_o magistrate_n who_o pass_v sentence_n upon_o it_o in_o full_a council_n ordain_v that_o savinian_a shall_v continue_v in_o his_o bishoprique_n 325._o yet_o with_o a_o proviso_n which_o be_v agree_v unto_o by_o the_o whole_a council_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o these_o magistrate_n first_o judge_v of_o the_o cause_n and_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n and_o afterward_o ask_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n whether_o they_o like_v it_o or_o no._n the_o holy_a synod_n say_v they_o have_v hear_v what_o sentence_n we_o have_v pass_v let_v they_o say_v whether_o they_o decree_v the_o same_o or_o whether_o they_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n the_o holy_a synod_n say_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a nor_o more_o upright_o 13_o in_o the_o three_o book_n juris_fw-la graeco-romani_a in_o the_o first_o tome_n we_o read_v this_o decree_n concern_v the_o deposition_n of_o a_o bishop_n 223._o john_n amathunt_n bishop_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o john_n archbishop_n of_o cyrus_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o deposition_n have_v be_v read_v at_o the_o emperor_n tribunal_n have_v find_v that_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o fifteen_o bishop_n and_o one_o archbishop_n the_o most_o holy_a patriarch_n luke_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o synod_n and_o the_o senate_n there_o present_a ordain_v that_o such_o deposition_n be_v invalid_a and_o of_o no_o account_n because_o the_o whole_a synod_n of_o the_o church_n of_o cyprus_n be_v not_o assemble_v 14_o sometime_o the_o emperor_n confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o synod_n contain_v such_o condemnation_n as_o justinian_n do_v that_o of_o anthemius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o some_o other_o depose_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o because_o those_o condemnation_n be_v find_v to_o be_v invalid_a if_o they_o be_v not_o fortify_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o who_o such_o jurisdiction_n do_v proper_o appertain_v justinian_n after_o he_o have_v make_v the_o confirmation_n aforesaid_a say_v 11._o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n which_o depose_v and_o anathematize_v the_o person_n aforesaid_a we_o also_o ordain_v the_o like_a more_o firm_o and_o with_o more_o continuance_n and_o we_o make_v it_o of_o force_n by_o our_o imperial_a law_n just_a as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o thing_n do_v by_o our_o own_o command_n 15_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o far_o believe_v and_o hold_v for_o certain_a this_o juris●diction_n of_o emperor_n
edict_n already_o allege_v 39_o and_o after_o all_o this_o yet_o this_o council_n will_v have_v the_o account_n of_o college_n so_o erect_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o examine_v yearly_o by_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o two_o deputy_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o the_o other_o two_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o edict_n allege_v here_o before_o whereby_o the_o make_n of_o such_o account_n of_o building-money_n and_o hospital_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o king_n judge_n inasmuch_o as_o there_o shall_v no_o account_n be_v make_v to_o they_o hereafter_o of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n which_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o such_o building_n and_o hospital_n to_o be_v employ_v to_o the_o use_n of_o those_o college_n and_o seminary_n but_o only_o to_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a accumulation_n of_o grievance_n for_o they_o to_o who_o it_o forme_o belong_v to_o make_v those_o account_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o by_o mean_n of_o such_o application_n of_o the_o revenue_n to_o another_o use_n and_o suppose_v that_o may_v be_v admit_v yet_o it_o be_v reasonable_a that_o those_o account_n be_v still_o make_v before_o the_o king_n officer_n at_o least_o that_o the_o major_a and_o sheriff_n of_o the_o town_n where_o such_o house_n be_v and_o such_o like_a person_n be_v call_v consider_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o college_n and_o school_n be_v no_o more_o spiritual_a than_o that_o of_o building_n hospital_n and_o spital_n especial_o consider_v that_o building-money_n 1●82_n after_o the_o building_n be_v finish_v aught_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o reparation_n of_o church_n and_o purchase_v of_o ornament_n for_o they_o and_o other_o work_n of_o charity_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v never_o any_o alteration_n for_o that_o of_o the_o party_n which_o be_v to_o make_v the_o account_n but_o it_o be_v always_o leave_v to_o the_o officer_n royal_a nor_o be_v the_o clergy_n suffer_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o account_n of_o building-money_n and_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v attempt_v there_o may_v be_v put_v in_o a_o appeal_n as_o from_o abuse_n as_o it_o be_v judge_v by_o a_o arrest_n in_o june_n 1550._o and_o as_o for_o the_o account_n of_o hospital_n they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v also_o before_o the_o king_n officer_n notwithstanding_o that_o by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o founder_n part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o those_o hospital_n be_v design_v and_o appoint_v for_o divine_a service_n according_a to_o a_o edict_n of_o king_n francis_n ann_n 1545._o and_o which_o must_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o case_n the_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n have_v the_o right_n of_o overseeing_a the_o administration_n of_o those_o hospital_n yet_o they_o retain_v unto_o themselves_o the_o hear_v of_o the_o account_n aswell_o as_o lay_v patron_n do_v howsoever_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o four_o at_o the_o least_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n or_o parish_n must_v be_v call_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o six_o article_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o hospital_n make_v 1561._o from_o which_o the_o ten_o article_n of_o that_o of_o melun_n 1580_o do_v no_o way_n derogate_v which_o must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o former_a in_o that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n shall_v be_v maintain_v in_o their_o right_n which_o they_o have_v of_o look_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o hospital_n and_o spital_n and_o take_v the_o account_n of_o their_o revenue_n where_o that_o must_v be_v repeat_v which_o be_v in_o the_o precedent_a edict_n the_o most_o eminent_a inhabitant_n etc._n etc._n be_v call_v thereunto_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o latter_a a●mes_n at_o the_o preserve_n and_o confirm_v the_o right_a of_o the_o clergy_n not_o at_o the_o exclude_v of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n or_o parish_n from_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o account_n 40_o last_o the_o remedy_n of_o appeal_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o take_v place_n against_o such_o decree_n as_o the_o bishop_n shall_v make_v for_o the_o repair_n of_o cloister_n and_o monastery_n but_o they_o must_v be_v forthwith_o put_v in_o execution_n without_o all_o appeal_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n be_v command_v upon_o paine●_n of_o excommunication_n to_o assist_v they_o in_o which_o there_o be_v many_o grievance_n first_o in_o that_o the_o judge_n royal_a as_o also_o the_o bailiff_n and_o steward_n be_v deprive_v of_o that_o cognizance_n which_o belong_v unto_o they_o before_o all_o other_o in_o case_n of_o such_o reparation_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o plain_o already_o second_o in_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v deprive_v of_o those_o appeal_n which_o will_v be_v make_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o inferior_a judge_n three_o in_o that_o no_o appeal_n can_v be_v make_v unto_o they_o as_o from_o abuse_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o bishop_n and_o four_a in_o that_o the_o king_n officer_n be_v make_v liable_a to_o excommunication_n contrary_a to_o that_o privilege_n which_o have_v be_v grant_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o they_o have_v ever_o enjoy_v whereof_o we_o shall_v speak_v in_o another_o place_n now_o if_o this_o council_n take_v place_n we_o must_v make_v account_n that_o appeal_v as_o from_o abuse_n be_v utter_o abolish_v as_o we_o have_v say_v already_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o concern_v france_n not_o a_o little_a inasmuch_o a●_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a weapon_n wherewith_o our_o predecessor_n have_v fight_v against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n chap._n iu._n of_o exemption_n exemption_n 1_o another_o mean_n which_o the_o council_n use_v to_o hook_n in_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o man_n be_v the_o exemption_n grant_v to_o church_n chapter_n corpse_n college_n abbey_n and_o monastery_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o lawful_a prelate_n and_o ordinary_n the_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o our_o trent_n father_n know_v well_o enough_o and_o confess_v that_o such_o exemption_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o much_o evil_n for_o say_v they_o 8._o they_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o person_n exempt_v to_o live_v more_o dissolute_o and_o more_o at_o their_o liberty_n this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o we_o must_v add_v that_o they_o take_v away_o the_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n which_o the_o exempt_v owe_v unto_o their_o prelate_n and_o ordinary_n and_o make_v they_o think_v themselves_o as_o good_a man_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o their_o superior_n general_n that_o the_o correction_n and_o punish_v of_o fault_n and_o excess_n be_v hereby_o ●indred_n and_o bring_v to_o nothing_o that_o they_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o exempt_v can_v be_v judge_v but_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o can_v do_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o remoteness_n from_o they_o that_o they_o rob_v man_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o do_v many_o good_a work_n in_o religion_n that_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o scandal_n that_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v grant_v abuse_v their_o privilege_n that_o they_o draw_v after_o they_o the_o ruin_n of_o monastery_n be_v rather_o a_o burden_n than_o a_o honour_n or_o profit_n to_o they_o all_o these_o reason_n be_v allege_v by_o william_n durant_n bishop_n of_o mende_n in_o gevauldan_n in_o the_o time_n of_o clement_n the_o five_o to_o persuade_v the_o general_n council_n of_o vienna_n to_o abolish_v such_o exemption_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o complaint_n have_v be_v make_v against_o they_o at_o several_a time_n 2_o saint_n bernard_n speak_v very_o free_o of_o they_o to_o eugenius_n the_o three_o in_o those_o book_n which_o he_o dedicate_v unto_o he_o eugenium_fw-la abbat_n say_v he_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o bishop_n bishop_n from_o their_o archbishop_n archbishop_n from_o their_o patriarch_n or_o primat_n do_v this_o manner_n of_o deal_n seem_v good_a to_o you_o it_o be_v strange_a if_o it_o can_v be_v excuse_v or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o need_n of_o it_o in_o so_o do_v you_o show_v that_o you_o have_v plenitude_n of_o power_n but_o perhaps_o not_o of_o justice_n he_o speak_v yet_o more_o of_o it_o but_o this_o be_v sufficient_a 3_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr alliaco_fw-it makes_z a_o complaint_n of_o they_o likewise_o and_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o course_n shall_v be_v take_v with_o they_o eccles._n add_v that_o many_o devout_a zealous_a man_n in_o the_o church_n have_v a_o long_a time_n complain_v of_o they_o as_o saint_n bernard_n in_o a_o book_n by_o he_o direct_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n and_o other_o john_n of_o paris_n a_o divine_a of_o the_o order_n of_o predicant_o urge_v the_o same_o saint_n bernard_n 19_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v say_v he_o that_o saint_n
lewes_n the_o eleven_o touch_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n have_v insert_v this_o article_n item_n it_o belong_v to_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n who_o be_v the_o principal_a founder_n guardian_n protector_n and_o defendor_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o this_o church_n when_o she_o suffer_v in_o her_o liberty_n to_o assemble_v and_o call_v together_o the_o prelate_n and_o other_o clergyman_n as_o well_o within_o this_o realm_n as_o of_o dauphiny_a and_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n so_o call_v together_o there_o to_o preside_v and_o provide_v a_o remedy_n against_o such_o attempt_n as_o may_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o say_a liberty_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v hereafter_o 5_o the_o three_o estate_n assemble_v at_o tours_n the_o year_n 1483_o in_o their_o remonstrance_n present_v to_o the_o same_o king_n lewes_n the_o eleven_o say_v thus_o that_o the_o king_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o crown_n as_o well_o of_o common_a right_n as_o by_o the_o consultation_n and_o request_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o dauphinie_n be_v as_o the_o former_a king_n his_o predecessor_n be_v the_o protector_n and_o defendor_n of_o the_o holy_a decree_n liberty_n and_o franchise_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o dauphinie_n 9_o according_a hereunto_o every_o time_n and_o as_o often_o as_o there_o have_v be_v any_o trouble_n or_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n or_o when_o any_o question_n be_v about_o proceed_v to_o some_o great_a reformation_n the_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v put_v their_o hand_n unto_o it_o and_o have_v apply_v the_o remedy_n either_o upon_o their_o own_o mere_a motion_n or_o at_o the_o request_n of_o other_o which_o be_v verify_v by_o the_o example_n of_o king_n hezekias_n who_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o the_o first_o month_n 15._o open_v the_o door_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o repair_v they_o and_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o command_v they_o to_o sanctify_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o carry_v forth_o the_o filthiness_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o the_o levite_n rise_v and_o they_o gather_v their_o brethren_n and_o come_v according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o cleanse_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o hezekiah_n cast_v out_o idolatry_n which_o by_o little_a and_o little_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n he_o remove_v the_o high_a place_v and_o break_v the_o image_n and_o cut_v down_o the_o grove_n and_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n that_o moses_n have_v make_v 18.4_o for_o until_o those_o day_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v burn_v incense_n to_o it_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v find_v after_o it_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n lose_v king_n josias_n command_v hilkiah_n the_o high_a priest_n allow_v and_o some_o other_o to_o go_v to_o huldah_n the_o prophetess_n to_o inquire_v concern_v this_o book_n have_v hear_v their_o report_n after_o their_o return_n he_o go_v up_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n 2●●●_n and_o all_o the_o man_n of_o judah_n and_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o all_o the_o people_n both_o small_a and_o great_a and_o he_o read_v in_o their_o ear_n all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o make_v a_o covenant_n before_o the_o lord_n to_o walk_v after_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o testimony_n and_o his_o statute_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o he_o command_v hilkiah_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o second_o order_n and_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o door_n to_o bring_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o vessel_n that_o be_v make_v for_o baal_n and_o he_o put_v down_o the_o idolatrous_a priest_n who_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n have_v ordain_v to_o burn_v incense_n and_o destroy_v their_o altar_n and_o do_v other_o such_o like_a thing_n concern_v the_o order_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n 7_o let_v we_o prove_v this_o further_a by_o the_o example_n and_o testimony_n of_o pope_n the_o four_o council_n say_v zonara_n be_v call_v by_o reason_n of_o th●_n instance_n which_o be_v make_v by_o leo_n pope_n of_o rome_n and_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o new_a rome_n 38._o to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a that_o the_o opinion_n of_o dios●oru●●●t●ia●ch_n ●●t●ia●ch_z of_o alexandria_n and_o eu●ych●s_n may_v not_o remain_v unexamined_a and_o that_o the_o crime_n commit_v against_o st._n flavian_n may_v not_o be_v slur_v over_o under_o hand_n pope_n boniface_n the_o first_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n honorius_n in_o his_o letter_n isidori_n to_o take_v order_n that_o they_o do_v not_o proceed_v to_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o corruption_n which_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o make_v a_o decree_n thereupon_o we_o have_v relate_v the_o passage_n of_o it_o in_o another_o place_n 8_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o write_v to_o aldebert_n king_n of_o england_n in_o these_o term_n most_o glorious_a son_n 60._o be_v diligent_a to_o preserve_v that_o grace_n you_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n make_v haste_n to_o extend_v the_o christian_a faith_n over_o all_o people_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o you_o multiply_v the_o zeal_n of_o your_o uprightness_n by_o their_o conversion_n take_v away_o the_o service_n of_o idol_n pull_v down_o the_o e●ifices_n of_o their_o temple_n exhort_v thereunto_o the_o mind_n of_o your_o subject_n in_o great_a uprightness_n and_o purity_n of_o life_n edify_v they_o by_o fright_v by_o flattering_n by_o correct_v they_o that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v reward_v in_o heaven_n by_o he_o who_o name_n and_o knowledge_n you_o shall_v have_v to_o dilate_a upon_o earth_n the_o same_o st._n gregory_n write_v to_o childebert_n king_n of_o france_n in_o this_o manner_n 53._o for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v be_v inform_v of_o certain_a thing_n which_o do_v high_o offend_v almighty_a god_n and_o do_v great_o disgrace_v the_o honour_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o priesthood_n we_o entreat_v you_o to_o take_v order_n that_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v mend_v by_o the_o censure_n of_o your_o power_n and_o to_o king_n theodebert_n thus_o 54_o this_o will_v be_v absolute_o profitable_a for_o your_o kingdom_n if_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n within_o your_o dominion_n be_v correct_v by_o such_o reformation_n as_o your_o excellence_n shall_v apply_v unto_o it_o 9_o the_o act_n of_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 876_o about_o the_o coronation_n of_o charles_n the_o second_o son_n to_o lewes_n the_o gentle_a 499._o contain_v a_o certain_a proposition_n make_v by_o pope_n john_n the_o eight_o where_o among_o other_o thing_n speak_v of_o charles_n the_o great_a he_o say_v of_o he_o that_o have_v raise_v all_o the_o church_n to_o a_o mighty_a greatness_n he_o have_v always_o this_o wish_n and_o desire_n of_o reform_v a●d_v restore_v the_o holy_a roman_a church_n to_o her_o first_o order_n and_o estate_n he_o add_v present_o after_o that_o he_o learn_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n out_o of_o holy_a writ●_n which_o he_o find_v to_o be_v unhusband_v and_o overgrow_v with_o the_o thorn_n of_o divers_a error_n and_o abuse_n that_o he_o trim_v it_o up_o with_o knowledge_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a purge_v it_o from_o error_n and_o furnish_v it_o with_o sure_a and_o certain_a doctrine_n 10_o john_n of_o paris_n 21._o a_o friar_n predicant_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1280_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o prince_n to_o repel_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o may_v proceed_v by_o the_o material_a sword_n especial_o when_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n turn_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n church_n the_o care_n whereof_o belong_v unto_o the_o king_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v bear_v the_o sword_n in_o vain_a 11_o claudius_n espenseus_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o sorbon_n 10._o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o his_o print_a 1547_o where_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o prince_n teach_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o prince_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n then_o especial_o when_o she_o be_v full_a of_o so_o great_a abuse_n error_n and_o heresy_n and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n i_o will_v here_o add_v one_o thing_n say_v he_o for_o fear_v lest_o any_o body_n shall_v think_v that_o it_o concern_v prince_n only_o that_o profane_a thing_n succeed_v well_o and_o not_o sacred_a too_o as_o if_o they_o be_v only_a keeper_n of_o
this_o realm_n o_o that_o you_o will_v remember_v that_o you_o alone_o do_v not_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o most_o christian_n in_o vain_a but_o because_o that_o your_o ancestor_n do_v ever_o succour_v the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o necessity_n above_o all_o other_o reformation_n loose_v not_o this_o privilege_n this_o so_o noble_a and_o magnificent_a title_n do_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o take_v this_o honour_n from_o you_o do_v not_o suffer_v yourself_o to_o be_v outvie_v in_o it_o defend_v your_o right_n your_o name_n your_o honour_n let_v the_o hope_n of_o all_o catholic_n and_o your_o brethren_n in_o christ_n move_v you_o which_o in_o this_o matter_n depend_v total_o upon_o your_o person_n for_o both_o all_o catholic_a prince_n and_o all_o other_o do_v wait_v upon_o your_o hand_n in_o this_o affair_n as_o upon_o he_o to_o who_o it_o do_v belong_v most_o of_o right_n of_o custom_n of_o power_n and_o other_o respect_n let_v the_o renown_a and_o immortal_a praise_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o move_v you_o to_o erect_v a_o perpetual_a monument_n of_o your_o name_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o mouth_n of_o all_o man_n 96._o 16_o a_o german_a devine_n provost_n of_o the_o church_n of_o worm_n make_v a_o petition_n and_o exhortation_n almost_o like_o the_o former_a which_o he_o exhibit_v to_o one_o of_o our_o king_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o former_a or_o no_o i_o know_v not_o but_o at_o least_o thus_o much_o we_o know_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o name_n for_o in_o a_o epistle_n which_o bear_v this_o inscription_n in_o the_o front_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la epistola_fw-la conradi_n ad_fw-la regem_fw-la carolum_fw-la ad_fw-la faciendam_fw-la synodum_fw-la towards_o the_o end_n thereof_o he_o bespeak_v he_o in_o these_o word_n now_o i_o will_v address_v the_o last_o part_n of_o my_o rude_a language_n to_o you_o most_o devout_a and_o most_o christian_a king_n of_o france_n be_v such_o and_o so_o great_a as_o you_o be_v set_v your_o mind_n o_o prince_n upon_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v to_o prince_n so_o shall_v you_o be_v above_o the_o head_n what_o will_v you_o think_v upon_o then_o sure_o upon_o this_o that_o peace_n may_v be_v make_v by_o your_o prowess_n you_o think_v upon_o this_o that_o you_o be_v a_o king_n think_v also_o that_o if_o you_o will_v reigle_v long_o in_o happiness_n it_o be_v write_v of_o you_o the_o king_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o justice_n ●●th_v disperse_v all_o evil_a let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o by_o vain_a word_n honour_n and_o fulfil_v your_o ministry_n but_o how_o certes_o that_o such_o as_o be_v far_o off_o and_o such_o as_o be_v near_o may_v both_o have_v peace_n by_o your_o mean_n that_o the_o rent_n of_o holy_a mother_n church_n may_v be_v sow_v up_o by_o you_o i_o say_v the_o common_a mother_n both_o of_o you_o and_o we_o who_o have_v feed_v you_o with_o her_o breast_n from_o who_o mouth_n you_o have_v receive_v the_o honey_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o milk_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n a_o stream_n of_o blood_n spring_v from_o the_o side_n of_o her_o spouse_n who_o be_v stretch_v out_o for_o you_o upon_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v adorn_v your_o cheek_n and_o therefore_o her_o cause_n be_v you_o her_o wrong_n be_v your_o wrong_n arise_v o_o prince_n arise_v up_o against_o it_o build_v a_o wall_n for_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o fight_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v above_o all_o thing_n you_o must_v strive_v for_o this_o o_o glorious_a king_n and_o long_o after_o it_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o labour_n for_o it_o with_o all_o your_o might_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o general_n council_n call_v at_o which_o without_o the_o effusion_n of_o blood_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n all_o thing_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o peace_n and_o concord_n 17_o now_o this_o prince_n whether_o it_o be_v charles_n the_o six_o or_o the_o seven_o for_o it_o must_v be_v one_o of_o the_o two_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n pretty_a handsome_o for_o under_o the_o first_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o neutralitie_n make_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o there_o be_v no_o acknowledge_v of_o pope_n in_o france_n there_o be_v also_o many_o goodly_a ordinance_n set_v out_o against_o the_o abuse_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v hold_v also_o under_o he_o where_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v former_o without_o either_o beginning_n or_o end_n as_o they_o use_v to_o say_v be_v confine_v within_o certain_a bound●_n and_o limit_n to_o which_o council_n he_o do_v contribute_v his_o ambassador_n and_o many_o learned_a divine_v among_o the_o rest_n the_o great_a cardinal_n of_o cambray_n mr._n john_n gerson_n as_o also_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n which_o have_v no_o mean_a authority_n there_o as_o we_o collect_v from_o the_o act_n themselves_o 48._o under_o the_o other_o be_v hold_v the_o counsel_n of_o pavia_n sienna_n and_o that_o famous_a one_o of_o basil_n which_o make_v some_o strong_a assault_n to_o moderate_v that_o unbridled_a power_n of_o pope_n the_o pragmatique_a sanction_n be_v then_o also_o set_v out_o in_o this_o kingdom_n the_o most_o useful_a and_o most_o commendable_a ordinance_n that_o ever_o be_v make_v in_o france_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o butt_n against_o which_o the_o modern_a pope_n have_v level_v all_o their_o curse_n have_v lop_v it_o so_o near_o that_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o the_o trunk_n which_o they_o never_o yet_o know_v how_o to_o reverse_v namely_o that_o decree_n which_o contain_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n and_o another_o concern_v annat_n emperor_n 18_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o and_o charles_n the_o nine_o king_n of_o france_n have_v sufficient_o show_v what_o power_n they_o have_v in_o the_o church_n consider_v that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n they_o endeavour_v to_o compose_v the_o difference_n which_o be_v in_o their_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n concern_v point_n of_o religion_n they_o make_v thing_n be_v dispute_v in_o divers_a imperial_a diet_n and_o at_o the_o conference_n of_o poissy_n they_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n as_o namely_o that_o of_o the_o interim_n for_o germany_n the_o ordinance_n of_o orleans_n and_o moulins_n for_o france_n where_o there_o be_v good_a rule_n for_o church_n discipline_n and_o the_o late_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o do_v more_o yet_o in_o establish_v edict_n which_o derogate_a from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o chap._n vi_o that_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v in_o all_o age_n make_v some_o law_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a polity_n and_o discipline_n and_o that_o they_o have_v power_n so_o to_o do_v 1_o he_o shall_v show_v himself_o a_o mere_a ignorant_a in_o law_n that_o will_v deny_v that_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n have_v at_o all_o time_n make_v law_n for_o the_o polity_n government_n and_o discipline_n ecclesiastical_a for_o proof_n whereof_o he_o need_v but_o read_v the_o sixteen_o book_n of_o the_o code_n of_o theodosius_n the_o first_o of_o justinian_o the_o novel_a constitution_n of_o theodosian_a valentinian_n and_o other_o emperor_n which_o be_v put_v after_o the_o same_o code_n of_o theodosius_n those_o of_o justinian_n and_o his_o edict_n those_o of_o leo_n and_o the_o other_o emperor_n which_o rule_v the_o empire_n after_o justinian_n some_o whereof_o be_v add_v in_o the_o late_a impression_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o other_o some_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o ius_n orientale_fw-it de_fw-fr benefidius_fw-la and_o in_o the_o book_n entitle_v ius_n graeco-romanum_a as_o also_o the_o capitulary_a of_o charles_n the_o great_a with_o divers_a other_o ordinance_n of_o our_o king_n of_o france_n make_v about_o this_o particular_a which_o may_v be_v read_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o they_o from_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o have_v not_o be_v manage_v regulate_v reform_v and_o purge_v by_o they_o as_o need_v require_v 2_o well_o fare_v doctor_n espenseus_n 10._o who_o when_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o this_o royal_a power_n and_o shape_a a_o answer_n even_o to_o those_o that_o do_v prince_n so_o much_o honour_n as_o to_o make_v they_o mere_a executioner_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o clergy_n man_n not_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o cognizance_n of_o the_o cause_n if_o prince_n say_v he_o must_v not_o meddle_v with_o sacred_a thing_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v there_o so_o many_o law_n and_o imperial_a constitution_n about_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n in_o the_o code_n the_o novel_n and_o the_o authentiques_n why_o so_o many_o royal_a edict_n and_o decree_n of_o senate_n extant_a in_o the_o annal_n of_o all_o christian_n
bellarmin_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la conciliis_fw-la c._n 16._o v._o acta_fw-la concilii_fw-la ni●●ni_fw-la &_o ruffin_n l_o 1._o act._n ●5_n ●2_n cap._n 32._o tom._n 1._o act._n council_n ephefini_fw-la eusebius_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constantini_n lib._n 4._o c._n 42._o act._n council_n ephes._n tom_n 1._o cap._n 12._o v_o act●_n conc._n nicani_fw-la cap._n 8._o theodore●_n 〈◊〉_d ●_o ●_o p._n 10._o the_o ●re●●_n father_n restrain_v of_o their_o liberty_n vid._n acta_fw-la concilii_fw-la cons●antinop_n 6._o tom_n 2._o conc._n vid._n acta_fw-la council_n franc●ord_n in_o libello_fw-la sacro_fw-la syllabo_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3_o council_n pag._n 6●5_n h●c_fw-la dec●eta_fw-la extant_a ms._n in_o vet_n bibliothecu_n v._o synodum_fw-la francicam_fw-la tom_n 2._o con_fw-mi p._n 456._o v._o synod_n suession_n tom_fw-mi 3._o council_n p._n 438._o rhegno_fw-la sub_fw-la a_o 787._o council_n meldense_a tom_fw-mi 3._o conc._n p._n 866._o synodus_fw-la pistis_fw-la in_o princ_n tom_n 3._o conc._n p._n 900._o lay_v man_n have_v assi_v at_o council_n in_o fr●nce_n vide_fw-la council_n tribu●iense_n in_o princ_fw-la &_o in_o fine_a tom_n 4._o council_n pa._n 26._o rigordus_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la philippi_n augusti_fw-la sub_fw-la anno_fw-la 1179._o m._n ●ean_v du_fw-fr tillet_n greffier_n en_fw-fr ses_fw-fr memoires_fw-fr v._o capitulare_fw-la caroli_n magni_fw-la lib._n 2._o ca._n 24._o &_o 25._o rigordus_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la philippi_n augusti_fw-la sub_fw-la anno_fw-la 1200._o idem_fw-la rigordus_n rigordus_n jean_n le_fw-fr maire_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr 2_o party_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr division_n des_fw-fr schism_n schism_n martinus_n polonus_n ●ive_a additio_fw-la adeum_fw-la postea_fw-la idem_fw-la rex●_n convocatis_fw-la praelatis_fw-la baronibus_fw-la ●c_z comit●_n regni_fw-la parisiis_fw-la ●oncilium_fw-la celebravit_fw-la petens_fw-la ●oncilium_fw-la e●_n auxilium_fw-la contra_fw-la papam_fw-la praedictum_fw-la praedictum_fw-la jean_n bouchet_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr 4_o party_n des_fw-fr annal_n d●_n aquitaine_n platina_n in_o bonifa●io_n 8._o v._o pragmat_n sanctionem_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la et_fw-la in_o fine_a vide_fw-la hunc_fw-la appellationis_fw-la libellum_fw-la in_o fasci●ulo_fw-la rerum_fw-la expe●endarum_fw-la i●an_v the_o more_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr 2_o party_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr difference_n des_fw-fr schism_n lay_v man_n admit_v to_o council_n in_o england_n and_o sp●ine_n neubrigen●is_fw-la l._n 1._o ●_o 19_o council_n tole●_n 6._o tom._n 3._o council_n pag._n 83._o council_n tolet._n ●_o tom._n 3._o council_n p._n 184._o council_n tolet._n 1●_n versus_fw-la princip_n tom._n 3._o concile_v pag._n 374._o math._n westmonast_n l_o 1._o sub_fw-la a_o 905._o neubrigens_n lib._n 1._o cap._n ult_n neubrigens_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2d_o idem_fw-la neubrig●_n l._n 1._o cap._n 14._o ●o●●_n l●y_a man_n have_v and_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o counsel_n luitprandus_n rerum_fw-la per_fw-la europam_fw-la gestarum_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 6._o 10._o 11._o martinu●_n polonu●_n in_o henr._n 3._o sub_fw-la anno_fw-la 1058._o virtue_n author_n qui_fw-la scripsit_fw-la de_fw-fr investituris_fw-la apud_fw-la theodoricum_n à_fw-fr nihem_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr privileg_n &_o ●urib●s_v imperat._n pag._n 785._o ●dem_fw-la author_n nicol._n c●sanus_n lib._n 2._o the_o concor_n ●athol_n ●ap_n 16._o nico●a●●_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la mi●●ae●em_fw-la imper._n for_o what_o end_n lay_v man_n may_v be_v admit_v bella●m_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr council_n c●_n ●●_o marsilius_n de_fw-fr milan_n in_o desen_n pac_fw-la part_n 2._o cap._n 20._o vide_fw-la a●●a_fw-la concilii_fw-la nicaeni_n panormit_fw-la ●n_a cap_n signi●ic●st●_n de_fw-fr elect._n elect._n socrat._v lib._n 1._o eccles._n hist._n ca._n ●_o ●_o council_n tolet._n 4._o tom_n 3._o concile_v pag●_n 65●_n l●●_n m●n_z admit_v at_o constance_n and_o pisa._n pisa._n council_n gener_fw-la 6_o 6_o const._n et_fw-fr conc._n generale_fw-mi 7._o nicaenum_n tom_n 3._o council_n pag._n 234_o &_o 452._o 452._o guilielm_n du●ant_n in_o trans_z de_fw-fr council_n council_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la papa_n lib._n 3._o c._n 12._o et_fw-la in_o conc._n gen●ralia_fw-la do_v 13._o q._n 4._o 4._o cardinalis_fw-la jacobatius_n lib._n 2._o the_o council_n art_n 6._o 6._o marsilius_n part_n 2._o cap._n 20._o in_o def_n pac_fw-la pac_fw-la onuphriu●_n in_o pio_n 4._o bellarm._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr council_n ca._n 15_o vide_fw-la chronicum_fw-la pauli_n langii_n anno_fw-la 1417._o et_fw-la pietro_n messia_n en_fw-fr la_fw-fr vita_fw-la de_fw-fr sigismondo_n apologia_fw-la concilii_fw-la 2._o pisani_n impressa_fw-la mediolani_n per_fw-la gotardum_fw-la ponticum_fw-la ●nno_fw-la 1512._o vide_fw-la acta_fw-la con●ilii_fw-la pisani_n 2._o nothing_o do_v in_o the_o council_n but_o what_o the_o pope_n please_v extat_fw-la in_o libello_fw-la de_fw-la statu_fw-la eccles._n gallic_n in_o schismate_fw-la extat_fw-la in_o eodem_fw-la libello_fw-la du_n moulin_n en_fw-fr son_fw-fr conseil_fw-fr sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trente_n et_fw-fr l'autheur_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'advertissement_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr reception_n du_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trente_n extat_fw-la hac_fw-la epistola_fw-la parisiis_fw-la impressa_fw-la apud_fw-la nicholaum_n chesneau_n anno_fw-la 1563._o lie_v m●n_z calle●_n to_o counsel_n in_o france_n guido_n faber_n in_o oratione_fw-la sua_fw-la habita_fw-la in_o conc._n try_v 4_o junii_fw-la ●nn_n 1562._o voye_n ●es_v commentaire_n du_fw-fr sieur_n precedent_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr estate_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr religion_n et_fw-fr republic_n so●s_fw-fr henri_fw-fr et_fw-fr francois_n 2._o et_fw-fr charles_n 9_o the_o council_n depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pope_n apol●●ia_fw-la fontidonii_fw-la onuphrius_n in_o vita_fw-la paul_n 3_o aen●as_n sylviu●_n i●_n comment_n ●●●cil_n basil●_n cap._n ego_fw-la de_fw-la jurejurando_fw-la extra_n onuphrius_n in_o vita_fw-la pii_fw-la 4._o 〈…〉_z bea●e_o ●h●●ha●g●s_n of_o ●_o council_n ●useb_fw-mi lo●_n 10._o ●●p_n 5._o ch●odoret_n l._n 2._o ●_o 16._o euseb._n de_fw-fr vit●●ons●antini_fw-la lib._n 3._o ●heodoret_fw-la l._n 21_o cap._n 30._o sozomen_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 16._o sulpitius_n se●erus_n sacra_fw-la hist._n lib._n ●_o this_o council_n compare_v with_o other_o for_o number_n of_o bishop_n bishop_n yet_o i_o have_v see_v a_o catalogue_n print_v 1546._o where_n when_o the_o 6._o session_n be_v se●_n be_v reckon_v but_o 3._o ●_z 3._o archbi●sh●ps_n 1._o ambassador_n the_o secretary_n ●nd_v proctor_n of_o the_o council_n 4._o ●_z and_o 2._o spanish_a doctor_n in_o all_o 38._o aeneas_n sylu._n liv_o 1._o comment_fw-fr council_n bas._n bellarm._n the_o con●cil_n author_n l._n ●_o cap._n 19_o henry_n 2._o prote_v ●g●inst_v the_o council_n extat_fw-la in_o libello_fw-la de_fw-la statu_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la g●lli●anae_fw-la in_o schisma●e_n complaint_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o th●_n french_a king_n vid._n can._n principatus_fw-la 1._o q._n 1._o t._n egi_fw-la tecum_fw-la d._n de_fw-fr rejudicat●_n l._n sedet_fw-la &_o manente_fw-la precariò_fw-la d._n de_fw-fr prec_fw-la canonist_n in_o ca._n 51._o qui_fw-la authoritate_fw-la de_fw-fr praeb●n_fw-fr in_o 6._o bald._n cons._n 50●_n l_o 5._o &_o alios_fw-la non_fw-la di●o_fw-la sed_fw-la ●_o numeratione_n sacilè_fw-la conclusio_fw-la inferri_fw-la potest_fw-la si_fw-mi invito_fw-la creditore_fw-la aliud_fw-la pro_fw-la alio_fw-la solvi_fw-la possit_fw-la the_o french_a ambassador_n lef●_n the_o council_n in_o what_o ●se_n a_o ●udge_n may_v be_v refuse_v gl●ss_n in_o c●n._n ●l●_n cause_n 3._o q._n 5._o in_o verb._n canonic_a canonic_a tacitus_n ●ive_a quintilian_n in_o dialogo_fw-la de_fw-la causis_fw-la corrup_n eloq_fw-la eloq_fw-la l'ordinance_n d●●lo●●_n d●●lo●●_n vtebantur_fw-la hac_fw-la formul●_n eiuro_fw-la niqws_fw-la est._n asconius_n in_o verrinam_fw-la 2d_o the_o king_n of_o england_n protestation_n sleidan_n comment_n lib._n 11●_n surius_n in_o hi●_n history_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 1537._o ou●_n of_o the_o french_a translation_n by_o james_n estou●neau_n surius_n ibid._n the_o king_n of_o england_n protestation_n sleidan_n comment_n lib._n 11._o sleidan_n l._n 16._o this_o answer_n be_v print_v a_o 1561._o v._o libellum_fw-la de_fw-la statu_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gallic_n in_o schismate_fw-la pag._n ●78_n 179._o there_o be_v diverse_a counsel_n about_o the_o same_o thing_n ¶_o augustin_n in_o in_o breviculo_fw-la collatine_n cum_fw-la donatistis_fw-la et_fw-la optatus_n meli●it_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr schismat_fw-la donatist_n et_fw-la collatio_fw-la carthagini_fw-la habit_n idem_fw-la august_n in_o collat._n 3._o dict_z cap._n 12._o idem_fw-la ib._n c._n 19_o idem_fw-la ib._n c._n 2._o the_o ca●●●ag●_n of_o the_o coun●●l_n at_o ariminum_n ariminum_n hilarius_n in_o fragmento_fw-la ex_fw-la opere_fw-la historico_fw-la historico_fw-la sulpi●us_fw-la severus_n in_o historia_fw-la sacra_fw-la sacra_fw-la idem_fw-la sulpitius_n li._n 2._o sac._n hist._n ac_fw-la siqui_fw-la ●ertinactùs_fw-la obsislerent_fw-la dummodo_fw-la be_v numerus_fw-la intra_fw-la quindecim_fw-la esset_fw-la in_fw-la exilium_fw-la pellerentur_fw-la idem_fw-la ibid._n dubius_n anni●_n hilarius_n scilicet_fw-la &_o magnâ_fw-la curarum_fw-la mole_n aes●uans_n cum_fw-la plerisque_fw-la videretur_fw-la non_fw-la ineundam_fw-la cum_fw-la his_fw-la communionem_fw-la qui_fw-la ar●minensem_fw-la synodum_fw-la re●●pissent_fw-la optimum_fw-la sactu_fw-la ●r●itratus_fw-la sic_fw-la legendum_fw-la non_fw-la arbitrati_fw-la revoc●re_a incipit_fw-la cunct●s_o ad_fw-la emendationem_fw-la et_fw-la paenitentiam_fw-la frequentibus_fw-la int●a_fw-la gallias_n conciltis_fw-la atque_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ferè_fw-la episcopis_fw-la de_fw-la er●ore_fw-la profit_n enti●us_fw-fr ap_fw-mi
defend_v himself_o from_o a_o ignominious_a authoration_n and_o to_o procure_v the_o repeal_n of_o those_o anathema_n which_o vex_v his_o soul_n how_o ever_o unjust_a he_o be_v compel_v to_o disclaim_v his_o right_n 17_o now_o this_o force_n and_o necessity_n appear_v by_o that_o testimony_n of_o otho_n bishop_n of_o freisinger_n wherefore_o say_v he_o the_o empire_n be_v dismember_v and_o break_v many_o way_n the_o emperor_n perceive_v that_o the_o king_n revolt_v from_o he_o because_o of_o the_o anathema_n pronounce_v against_o he_o and_o fear_v his_o father_n example_n have_v call_v a_o great_a assembly_n of_o prince_n together_o at_o worm_n he_o resign_v the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n to_o lampert_n legate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o revolt_n against_o he_o be_v such_o that_o his_o own_o nephew_n do_v abandon_v he_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o vsperge_n who_o add_v these_o word_n the_o true_a token_n of_o this_o violence_n 1122._o he_o surrender_v ecclesiastical_a investiture_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o all_o other_o spiritual_a matter_n which_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n have_v so_o long_o manage_v and_o which_o he_o have_v purpose_v for_o the_o not_o impair_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o empire_n never_o to_o forgo_v so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v no_o man_n can_v say_v but_o a_o injust_a anathema_n be_v a_o unlawful_a force_n a_o violent_a impression_n and_o what_o be_v do_v by_o occasion_n thereof_o be_v liable_a to_o restitution_n 18_o the_o term_n of_o this_o surrender_n do_v elsewhere_o show_v it_o to_o be_v personal_a and_o that_o it_o lay_v no_o obligation_n upon_o his_o successor_n it_o be_v the_o exposition_n which_o be_v put_v upon_o it_o in_o those_o day_n witness_v the_o same_o bishop_n of_o freisinger_n 16._o this_o privilege_n therefore_o be_v set_v down_o in_o write_v for_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o he_o by_o way_n of_o exchange_n by_o the_o pope_n that_o those_o who_o shal●_n be_v elect_v as_o well_o on_o this_o side_n as_o you_o side_n the_o mountain_n shall_v not_o be_v consecrate_v bishop_n till_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o royalty_n from_o his_o hand_n and_o by_o the_o sceptre_n which_o the_o roman_n say_v be_v grant_v for_o quietness_n sake_n and_o to_o he_o only_o not_o to_o his_o successor_n see_v by_o their_o confession_n the_o compact_n be_v no_o more_o but_o personal_a for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v what_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o must_v acknowledge_v it_o be_v just_a so_o in_o regard_n of_o what_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o pope_n 19_o so_o the_o emperor_n which_o reign_v after_o he_o complain_v of_o injustice_n even_o lotharius_n the_o four_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o same_o henry_n against_o innocent_a the_o second_o witness_v the_o abbot_n of_o vsperge_n 1126._o at_o this_o time_n say_v he_o the_o pope_n go_v to_o find_v the_o emperor_n at_o leiege_n demand_v assistance_n and_o favour_n of_o he_o against_o the_o say_a peter_n and_o his_o abettor_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v take_v advice_n what_o he_o shall_v answer_v begin_v to_o redemand_v of_o the_o pope_n the_o investiture_n of_o bishopriques_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v enjoy_v for_o a_o long_a time_n before_o the_o same_o be_v do_v by_o otho_n the_o four_o opinion_n which_o a_o german_a historian_n signify_v unto_o we_o by_o these_o word_n speak_v of_o the_o dissension_n of_o that_o emperor_n and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o 3●_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n say_v he_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o may_v be_v because_o the_o emperor_n redemanded_a the_o ancient_a imperial_a right_n over_o italy_n some_o whereof_o have_v be_v late_o transfer_v unto_o the_o church_n 174._o but_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n affirm_v it_o more_o clear_o speak_v also_o of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n the_o second●_n otho_n fourth●_o say_v he_o and_o frederick_n the_o second_o when_o they_o will_v have_v repeal_v it_o may_v be_v for_o lawful_a cause_n these_o grant_n and_o privilege_n he_o speak_v of_o investiture_n or_o indeed_o repeal_n they_o absolute_o or_o in_o part_n they_o endure_v many_o plot_n persecution_n and_o impediment_n from_o the_o clergy_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 20_o as_o for_o those_o counsel_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o renunciation_n and_o pronounce_v the_o emperor_n anathema_n deprive_v he_o of_o investiture_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v upon_o what_o ground_n they_o stand_v they_o deprive_v a_o emperor_n of_o the_o right_n of_o investiture_n without_o hear_v he_o without_o summon_v he_o see_v here_o a_o injustice_n they_o condemn_v investiture_n as_o heretical_a they_o condemn_v then_o pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o and_o all_o his_o council_n of_o heresy_n who_o grant_v they_o to_o charles_n the_o great_a leo_n the_o eight_o and_o his_o council_n who_o grant_v they_o to_o otho_n as_o also_o all_o other_o pope_n who_o tolerate_v they_o yea_o even_o those_o who_o approve_v they_o of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v already_o 21_o and_o upon_o this_o point_n we_o must_v hear_v what_o our_o good_a bishop_n of_o chartres_n that_o great_a pope-monk_n say_v who_o be_v much_o trouble_v to_o defend_v this_o condemnation_n of_o heresy_n and_o implication_n of_o horrible_a contradiction_n for_o in_o his_o epistle_n make_v answer_n to_o john_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n who_o reprehend_v herein_o the_o father_n of_o this_o council_n of_o vienna_n whereas_o say_v he_o you_o reprehend_v those_o that_o rank_n the_o investiture_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n make_v by_o lay_v man_n among_o the_o number_n of_o heresy_n it_o seem_v there_o be_v no_o great_a force_n in_o your_o reprehension_n for_o although_o heretical_a error_n lodge_v in_o the_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o catholic_a faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o as_o we_o know_v a_o catholic_a by_o his_o catholic_a work_n so_o we_o know_v a_o heretic_n by_o his_o heretical_a work_n god_n have_v say_v by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o and_o every_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o his_o fruit_n and_o although_o external_a investiture_n make_v by_o lay_v man_n can_v be_v proper_o judge_v heresy_n yet_o to_o be_v of_o opinion_n and_o to_o maintain_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_a be_v a_o undoubted_a heresy_n this_o be_v not_o say_v with_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o the_o council_n say_v investiture_n be_v a_o heresy_n and_o he_o make_v no_o answer_n to_o that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o heresy_n than_o it_o follow_v as_o we_o say_v that_o those_o precedent_a pope_n and_o counsel_n that_o authorize_v they_o yea_o to_o take_v in_o all_o that_o be_v in_o ivo_n answer_n that_o be_v of_o opinion_n they_o may_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v true_o heretic_n 22_o this_o bishop_n make_v we_o behold_v this_o heresy_n of_o another_o colour_n so_o much_o pain_n do_v he_o take_v to_o defend_v a_o bad_a cause_n for_o he_o judge_v it_o a_o heresy_n in_o case_n the_o lay_v man_n which_o perform_v it_o do_v think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n if_o any_o lay_v man_n say_v he_o fall_v into_o this_o folly_n that_o he_o think_v he_o can_v administer_v a_o sacrament_n or_o a_o thing_n belong_v to_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o give_v and_o take_v of_o a_o rod_n we_o judge_v he_o a_o absolute_a heretic_n not_o for_o his_o manual_a investiture_n but_o for_o hi●_n diabolical_a opinion_n very_o so_o shall_v a_o priest_n be_v too_o that_o shall_v believe_v his_o ●urre_n his_o surplice_n or_o his_o square_a cap_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o he_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v devest_v of_o they_o in_o that_o epistle_n he_o note_v no_o other_o heresy_n in_o investiture_n but_o urge_v many_o reason_n to_o prove_v they_o be_v not_o so_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o conclude_v that_o prince_n must_v be_v deprive_v of_o they_o because_o say_v he_o be_v perform_v by_o lay_v man_n it_o be_v a_o usurpation_n upon_o another_o man_n right_a a_o sacrilegious_a presumption_n he_o speak_v thus_o to_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n right_a or_o wrong_n 23_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v of_o it_o former_o when_o he_o be_v in_o cold_a blood_n in_o a_o epistle_n of_o his_o write_v to_o hugh_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n as_o for_o that_o which_o you_o write_v unto_o i_o vindicate_v how_o the_o say_a party_n elect_v receive_v investiture_n into_o his_o bishoprique_n from_o the_o king_n hand_n we_o know_v nothing_o of_o it_o nor_o be_v it_o tell_v unto_o we_o by_o any_o body_n but_o although_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o consider_v that_o have_v no_o force_n of_o a_o sacrament_n to_o make_v a_o bishop_n whether_o it_o be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v i_o do_v not_o see_v wherein_o it_o can_v be_v hurtful_a to_o faith_n and_o religion_n yea_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o by_o apostolical_a authority_n king_n
be_v forbid_v to_o grant_v bishopriques_n after_o canonical_a election_n 65._o for_o we_o read_v that_o some_o pope_n of_o good_a fame_n have_v become_v intercessor_n to_o king_n for_o those_o who_o have_v be_v elect_v unto_o church_n to_o get_v they_o to_o give_v they_o the_o bishopriques_n and_o that_o other_o have_v defer_v the_o consecration_n because_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v the_o prince_n consent_n i_o will_v have_v set_v down_o the_o example_n hereof_o be_v it_o not_o that_o i_o desire_v to_o avoid_v prolixity_n in_o my_o letter_n so_o pope_n vrban_n as_o we_o understand_v exclude_v king_n only_o from_o the_o corporal_a investiture_n but_o not_o from_o the_o election_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o be_v head_n of_o the_o people_n or_o of_o the_o grant_n although_o the_o eight_o synod_n forbid_v they_o only_o to_o assist_v at_o the_o election_n but_o not_o at_o the_o delivery_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o hand_n or_o by_o seal_n or_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o the_o rod_n what_o matter_n it_o see_v king_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o confer_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a in_o it_o but_o only_o to_o consent_v unto_o the_o will_n of_o those_o that_o require_v they_o or_o to_o grant_v unto_o they_o ecclesiastical_a possession_n and_o other_o external_a good_n which_o church_n hold_v by_o the_o liberality_n of_o king_n as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v now_o twice_o there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o that_o see_v that_o by_o former_a counsel_n the_o investiture_n be_v grant_v to_o emperor_n and_o the_o consecration_n to_o bishop_n 24_o what_o can_v be_v allege_v more_o in_o defence_n of_o these_o late_a counsel_n if_o any_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o emperor_n henry_n be_v just_o deprive_v of_o this_o right_n because_o he_o have_v violate_v the_o holy_a see_v and_o have_v put_v pope_n paschal_n in_o prison_n we_o will_v give_v two_o or_o three_o very_o pat_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n one_o that_o he_o do_v no_o more_o but_o repel_v the_o injury_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o himself_o for_o even_o in_o the_o church_n and_o while_o he_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n from_o the_o pope_n hand_n he_o be_v like_a to_o have_v be_v traitorous_o kill_v hear_v what_o the_o german_a chronicle_n say_v of_o it_o while_o the_o emperor_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o pope_n hand_n behold_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a of_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v offend_v with_o that_o purpose_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v put_v on_o that_o he_o will_v maintain_v the_o constitution_n of_o his_o predecessor_n stir_v up_o a_o sedition_n and_o tumult_n in_o the_o temple_n beat_v off_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o emperor_n body_n and_o go_v about_o to_o seize_v upon_o he_o who_o with_o much_o ado_n save_v himself_o repel_v the_o force_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o emperor_n he_o afterward_o add_v he_o get_v he_o present_o into_o the_o city_n kill_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o citizen_n and_o clergyman_n take_v the_o pope_n prisoner_n elsewhere_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n be_v very_o good_a friend_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o agreement_n make_v betwixt_o they_o of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v already_o yea_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o pope_n seal_v it_o by_o deliver_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o emperor_n 1111._o by_o give_v unto_o he_o say_v sigebert_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n we_o give_v you_o this_o body_n say_v he_o o_o emperor_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o true_a peace_n betwixt_o i_o &_o you_o and_o for_o a_o three_o answer_n his_o personal_a and_o particular_a fault_n can_v not_o prejudice_v the_o empire_n and_o his_o successor_n but_o we_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o this_o point_n it_o only_o remain_v that_o some_o that_o can_v well_o manage_v it_o enter_v upon_o this_o inheritance_n there_o will_v want_v no_o right_n if_o he_o want_v no_o force_n chap._n x._o of_o election_n nomination_n and_o investiture_n belong_v to_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n 1_o we_o come_v now_o to_o other_o princedom_n bishops'_o reserve_v france_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o last_o place_n the_o 6._o twelve_o council_n of_o toledo_n grant_v election_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n which_o our_o pope_n have_v register_v in_o their_o 63._o book_n it_o be_v decree_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n and_o gallicia_n that_o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o privilege_n of_o every_o particular_a province_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a hereafter_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o toledo_n to_o receive_v and_o consecrate_v all_o such_o bishop_n as_o the_o royal_a power_n shall_v elect_v and_o that_o every_o such_o bishop_n shall_v be_v approve_v by_o his_o judgement_n which_o as_o 4._o lancelot_n conrade_n witness_v be_v observe_v and_o keep_v even_o at_o this_o day_n 2_o as_o for_o the_o king_n of_o england_n though_o they_o have_v often_o quarrel_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n about_o this_o point_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o from_o age_n to_o age_n we_o always_o find_v they_o possess_v of_o this_o right_n for_o to_o go_v no_o high_o about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o king_n 11●2_n etheldred_n create_v one_o robert_n a●chbi●shop_n of_o london_n and_o one_o edmund_n bishop_n of_o luiddifarne_n otherwise_o call_v holyland_n at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o that_o bishoprique_n king_n edward_z made_z one_o robert_z first_o bishop_n of_o london_n etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o successor_n he_o make_v one_o william_n he_o give_v also_o the_o bishoprique_n of_o shyrburne_n to_o one_o herman_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundundred_n &_o seventy_o king_n william_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n bestow_v the_o archbishoprique_n of_o york_n upon_o a_o canon_n call_v thomas_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o seventy_o eight_o he_o bestow_v three_o bishopriques_n upon_o three_o of_o his_o chaplain_n and_o many_o other_o upon_o divers_a ecclesiastique_n 3_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o ninety_o two_o king_n william_n the_o second_o bestow_v the_o bishoprique_n of_o lincoln_n upon_o robert_n blunt_n his_o chancellor_n he_o bestow_v also_o that_o of_o worcester_n upon_o a_o canon_n call_v samson_n one_o of_o the_o two_o bestow_v also_o the_o bishoprique_n of_o silchester_n upon_o lanfranke_n 4_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o one_o king_n henry_n the_o first_o bestow_v the_o bishoprique_n of_o hereford_n upon_o kemelin_n and_o give_v he_o the_o investiture_n of_o it_o the_o same_o king_n give_v the_o bishoprique_n of_o winchester_n to_o a_o canon_n call_v thuilphus_fw-la and_o afterward_o to_o the_o chaplain_n of_o queen_n adalida_n 5_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o two_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n will_v have_v make_v the_o council_n of_o lateran_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o england_n hold_v against_o henry_n the_o five_o about_o the_o point_n of_o investiture_n and_o in_o obedience_n thereto_o he_o make_v a_o difficulty_n of_o consecrate_v certain_a bishop_n who_o have_v be_v invest_v by_o henry_n the_o first_o who_o be_v much_o incense_v against_o he_o upon_o that_o occasion_n and_o forasmuch_o say_v matthew_n westminster_n as_o he_o will_v not_o consecrate_v certain_a bishop_n who_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o king_n obey_v his_o pleasure_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o communicate_v with_o they_o the_o king_n be_v thereupon_o move_v with_o choler_n against_o he_o 6_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o seven_o 1●0●_o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v at_o london_n where_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o from_o thence_o forward_a no_o man_n shall_v be_v invest_v in_o england_n by_o the_o king_n or_o any_o other_o lay_v man_n into_o any_o bishoprique_n or_o abbey_n bishopr●qu●s_n by_o the_o donation_n of_o the_o pastoral_n staff_n or_o ring_n always_o reserve_v the_o homage_n due_a to_o the_o king_n but_o henry_n the_o first_o do_v not_o forbear_v to_o use_v his_o right_n for_o all_o that_o which_o this_o council_n can_v not_o take_v from_o he_o and_o indeed_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o nine_o 1109._o he_o erect_v the_o abbey_n of_o ely_n into_o a_o episcopal_a see_v and_o cause_v one_o herveus_n to_o be_v ordain_v over_o it_o and_o have_v assemble_v divers_a bishop_n at_o london_n in_o the_o same_o year_n he_o make_v they_o consecrate_v one_o thomas_n who_o have_v be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o york_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o thirteen_o 2._o the_o same_o king_n henry_n bestow_v the_o archbishoprique_n of_o canterbury_n upon_o richard_n bishop_n of_o london_n and_o invest_v he_o in_o it_o by_o give_v he_o the_o crosier_n